Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n bishop_n ordination_n presbyter_n 9,874 5 10.5221 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A06753 A treatise of the groundes of the old and newe religion Deuided into two parts, whereunto is added an appendix, containing a briefe confutation of William Crashaw his first tome of romish forgeries and falsifications. Maihew, Edward, 1570-1625. 1608 (1608) STC 17197.5; ESTC S118525 390,495 428

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

go_v on_o in_o the_o first_o place_n allege_v and_o therefore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o these_o controversy_n the_o papist_n and_o the_o prelate_n go_v hand_n in_o hand_n the_o say_a minister_n do_v in_o like_a manner_n make_v the_o like_a offer_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o jesuite_n promise_v their_o reconcilement_n unto_o that_o see_v of_o rome_n if_o they_o can_v either_o by_o argument_n pull_v they_o from_o the_o aforesaid_a proposition_n or_o can_v answer_v such_o argument_n as_o they_o shall_v propound_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o they_o in_o manner_n and_o form_n before_o specify_v in_o the_o offer_n and_o therefore_o it_o both_o stand_v the_o minister_n upon_o to_o make_v the_o aforesaid_a offer_n and_o the_o prelate_n except_o they_o will_v have_v all_o the_o world_n to_o judge_v they_o to_o be_v friend_n in_o hart_n to_o popery_n to_o accept_v of_o the_o same_o thus_o the_o puritan_n minister_n and_o no_o such_o offer_n that_o i_o find_v through_o the_o whole_a book_n be_v make_v to_o the_o protestant_n this_o then_o be_v affirm_v by_o these_o man_n that_o if_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n mainetain_v against_o they_o be_v true_a and_o their_o assertion_n be_v false_a the_o separation_n of_o the_o new_a sectary_n church_n from_o we_o can_v be_v justify_v yea_o they_o avouch_v that_o if_o this_o be_v so_o that_o their_o say_a church_n be_v schismatical_a unto_o which_o if_o we_o add_v that_o in_o very_a deed_n the_o proposition_n which_o the_o puritan_n offer_v to_o maintain_v against_o the_o prelate_n be_v false_a and_o erroneous_a the_o truth_n of_o which_o assertion_n be_v confess_v &_o with_o great_a vehemency_n defend_v by_o all_o the_o english_a protestant_n and_o further_o concern_v some_o of_o the_o say_a proposition_n very_o well_o prove_v by_o hooker_n whitgift_n bilson_n covel_n and_o other_o of_o their_o company_n we_o shall_v have_v our_o desire_a conclusion_n that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o english_a sectary_n the_o puritan_n and_o the_o protestant_n our_o adversary_n church_n be_v schismatical_a and_o that_o we_o be_v the_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n but_o i_o must_v not_o here_o omit_v by_o the_o way_n to_o advertise_v my_o reader_n that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o wise_a and_o judicious_a person_n this_o argument_n yield_v we_o by_o our_o adversary_n can_v but_o also_o be_v a_o very_a strong_a proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o catholic_a cause_n for_o whosoever_o mature_o consider_v the_o matter_n shall_v find_v that_o the_o protestant_n in_o reject_v the_o puritan_n proposition_n follow_v the_o prescript_n and_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o father_n he_o shall_v also_o perceive_v that_o the_o puritan_n in_o avouch_v that_o which_o i_o have_v relate_v build_v upon_o very_o good_a reason_n flow_v out_o of_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o take_v from_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o upholder_n of_o the_o same_o in_o defend_v it_o because_o out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v defend_v by_o the_o protestant_n against_o the_o puritan_n as_o also_o out_o of_o the_o proof_n and_o reason_n allege_v for_o themselves_o very_o strong_a argument_n may_v be_v draw_v to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o whole_a catholic_a religion_n as_o will_v sometime_o appear_v in_o my_o treatise_n follow_v and_o to_o give_v here_o one_o instance_n the_o protestant_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o archbishop_n bring_v diverse_a reason_n and_o among_o other_o this_o one_o that_o peace_n and_o unity_n can_v otherwise_o hardly_o be_v maintain_v in_o the_o church_n but_o what_o faith_n cartwright_n 125._o survey_v of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipline_n chap._n 8._o pag._n 125._o true_o he_o affirm_v as_o be_v report_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipline_n that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v more_o necessary_a over_o all_o church_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o archbishop_n over_o a_o province_n and_o this_o his_o assertion_n be_v ground_v upon_o very_o good_a reason_n as_o i_o shall_v more_o at_o large_a declare_v hereafter_o now_o to_o prosecute_v my_o intend_a discourse_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v some_o error_n in_o the_o english_a sectary_n here_o occur_v another_o argument_n like_a unto_o the_o former_a not_o unfit_a for_o my_o purpose_n for_o like_a as_o i_o have_v already_o demonstrate_v that_o if_o they_o all_o say_v true_a our_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n so_o it_o be_v also_o evident_a that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o they_o all_o say_v true_a it_o be_v also_o needful_a there_o be_v one_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n militant_a 372._o survey_v etc._n etc._n chap._n 29._o pag._n 372._o for_o thus_o i_o argue_v cartwright_n a_o principal_a puritan_n esteem_v by_o those_o of_o his_o own_o sect_n as_o the_o aforesaid_a author_n note_v one_o of_o the_o only_a worthy_n of_o the_o world_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v more_o necessary_a over_o all_o church_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o archbishop_n over_o a_o province_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o archbishop_n as_o all_o our_o protestant_n defend_v be_v necessary_a over_o a_o province_n therefore_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v necessary_a over_o all_o church_n it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o these_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o person_n of_o sundry_a sect_n of_o which_o the_o one_o confess_v the_o other_o to_o err_v i_o grant_v it_o but_o this_o notwithstanding_o they_o prove_v that_o either_o some_o english_a sectary_n err_v or_o otherwise_o that_o our_o religion_n by_o they_o reject_v be_v true_a which_o suffice_v my_o purpose_n nevertheless_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o do_v afford_v we_o no_o such_o reason_n true_o if_o i_o be_v not_o here_o restrain_v to_o the_o writing_n only_o of_o a_o preface_n i_o can_v assign_v diverse_a one_o i_o will_v set_v down_o for_o a_o example_n 159._o field_n book_n 3_o chap._n 39_o pag._n 158._o 156._o 157._o 159._o m._n field_n in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o church_n plain_o confess_v that_o in_o sundry_a church_n of_o the_o world_n be_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n diverse_a worthy_a minister_n of_o god_n be_v ordain_v by_o presbyter_n or_o priest_n sometime_o of_o our_o church_n and_o have_v no_o ordination_n from_o any_o bishop_n nay_o he_o seem_v apparent_o to_o grant_v that_o none_o but_o presbyter_n do_v impose_v hand_n in_o ordain_v minister_n or_o superintendent_o in_o many_o of_o the_o pretend_a reform_a church_n as_o namely_o in_o those_o of_o france_n and_o other_o 21._o morton_n in_o apolog._n cathol_a part_n 1._o lib._n 1._o cap._n 21._o which_o be_v also_o insinuate_v by_o d._n morton_n and_o therefore_o both_o these_o doctor_n teach_v that_o in_o time_n of_o necessity_n a_o priest_n or_o minister_n may_v impose_v hand_n and_o consecrate_v a_o priest_n and_o consequent_o also_o a_o bishop_n or_o a_o superintendent_n out_o of_o this_o their_o doctrine_n i_o frame_v this_o argument_n see_v that_o diverse_a superintendent_o and_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n i_o may_v say_v all_o at_o the_o least_o of_o some_o country_n for_o field_n himself_o except_v only_o those_o of_o england_n &_o denmark_n and_o of_o some_o other_o place_n which_o place_n he_o name_v not_o have_v have_v their_o ordination_n or_o order_n only_o from_o priest_n it_o follow_v that_o if_o priest_n have_v no_o power_n of_o ordination_n that_o be_v of_o give_v order_n that_o such_o minister_n and_o superintendent_o be_v no_o true_a minister_n and_o superintendent_o but_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o assertion_n of_o a_o principal_a english_a protestant_n have_v no_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o can_v give_v no_o order_n therefore_o such_o superintendent_o and_o minister_n be_v no_o true_a superintendent_o and_o minister_n of_o which_o i_o also_o infer_v that_o such_o church_n be_v no_o true_a church_n for_o they_o want_v a_o true_a ministry_n and_o clergy_n without_o which_o as_o 51._o as_o field_n ibid._n pag._n 154._o and_o book_n 2._o chap._n 6._o pag._n 51._o field_n confess_v there_o can_v be_v no_o church_n and_o this_o english_a protestant_n be_v 1606_o be_v william_n l._n bishop_n of_o rochester_n in_o his_o sermon_n concern_v the_o antiquity_n &_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n preach_v before_o the_o king_n at_o hampton-court_n sep._n 21._o 1606_o william_n l._n b._n of_o rochester_n who_o in_o his_o sermon_n not_o long_o since_o preach_v before_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o afterward_o print_v by_o his_o majesty_n express_a commandment_n as_o the_o same_o bishop_n sermon_n bishop_n in_o the_o epist_n to_o the_o king_n print_v before_o the_o sermon_n avouch_v affirm_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n first_o that_o the_o apostle_n keep_v to_o themselves_o ordination_n or_o authority_n to_o give_v holy_a order_n till_o
they_o appoint_v bishop_n unto_o who_o they_o convey_v it_o second_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n succeed_v will_v not_o admit_v any_o other_o but_o bishop_n to_o that_o business_n as_o not_o justifiable_a for_o the_o presbyter_n i_o use_v his_o word_n either_o by_o reason_n example_n or_o scripture_n and_o have_v prove_v it_o concern_v reason_n touch_v example_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o 3._o that_o c._n 3._o not_o one_o be_v to_o be_v show_v through_o the_o whole_a story_n ecclesiastical_a that_o any_o beside_o a_o bishop_n do_v it_o and_o that_o if_o some_o of_o the_o inferior_a rank_n presume_v to_o do_v it_o his_o act_n be_v reverse_a by_o the_o church_n for_o unlawful_a which_o he_o prove_v by_o a_o example_n as_o for_o scripture_n he_o avouch_v there_o be_v none_o either_o of_o holy_a man_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o do_v give_v such_o authority_n to_o presbyter_n for_o all_o the_o father_n say_v he_o with_o one_o consent_n do_v contradict_v it_o and_o among_o other_o he_o allege_v s._n ambrose_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v consonant_a neither_o with_o god_n nor_o man_n law_n that_o any_o beside_o a_o bishop_n shall_v do_v it_o of_o the_o scripture_n he_o write_v thus_o no_o scripture_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n either_o anagogical_o by_o consequent_a or_o direct_o by_o precept_n do_v justify_v it_o for_o analogy_n none_o but_o the_o apostle_n do_v it_o or_o may_v do_v it_o as_o before_o you_o hear_v not_o direct_o for_o to_o what_o presbyter_n be_v the_o authority_n commit_v as_o a_o presbyter_n etc._n etc._n thus_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n plain_o contradict_v the_o other_o two_o english_a protestant_n doctor_n and_o hence_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o either_o the_o say_a bishop_n err_v in_o deny_v this_o power_n to_o priest_n or_o that_o the_o say_v doctor_n be_v false_a in_o yield_v it_o unto_o they_o and_o consequent_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o some_o english_a sectary_n fall_v into_o error_n moreover_o see_v that_o the_o bishop_n convince_v by_o such_o good_a proof_n the_o truth_n of_o his_o assertion_n and_o the_o say_v two_o doctor_n confess_v some_o of_o their_o church_n to_o have_v no_o other_o pastor_n but_o such_o as_o be_v order_v by_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n it_o be_v even_o as_o apparent_a that_o such_o their_o church_n be_v in_o very_a truth_n no_o true_a church_n but_o it_o be_v now_o high_a time_n that_o i_o end_v my_o discourse_n touch_v this_o point_n yea_o that_o i_o conclude_v this_o my_o preface_n be_v therefore_o the_o truth_n of_o my_o accusation_n that_o the_o learned_a sectary_n as_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o other_o have_v notorious_o and_o gross_o err_v be_v so_o evident_o demonstrate_v by_o a_o few_o instance_n which_o i_o have_v relate_v among_o diverse_a other_o which_o i_o have_v omit_v let_v i_o now_o demand_v of_o my_o christian_n reader_n what_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o ground_v the_o everlasting_a estate_n of_o his_o soul_n either_o upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o learned_a master_n or_o upon_o his_o own_o and_o first_o concern_v his_o learned_a master_n he_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o they_o have_v all_o err_v in_o some_o point_n or_o other_o and_o do_v not_o a_o error_n in_o one_o thing_n prove_v a_o possibility_n of_o err_v in_o other_o of_o like_a sort_n but_o have_v his_o captain_n any_o further_a warrant_n concern_v one_o article_n then_o touch_v a_o other_o they_o have_v not_o without_o all_o doubt_n how_o do_v he_o then_o know_v that_o they_o have_v not_o err_v in_o all_o point_n in_o which_o they_o dissent_v from_o the_o ancient_a belief_n of_o all_o christian_n their_o predecessor_n he_o will_v perhaps_o answer_v that_o he_o know_v well_o they_o err_v not_o touch_v this_o and_o that_o although_o their_o opinion_n be_v never_o so_o erroneous_a touch_v other_o point_n loe_o now_o he_o refer_v all_o to_o his_o own_o judgement_n i_o join_v therefore_o here_o with_o he_o and_o first_o i_o ask_v what_o more_o strong_a warrant_v he_o have_v that_o he_o can_v err_v than_o have_v his_o learned_a master_n be_v he_o comparable_a to_o they_o either_o in_o wit_n learning_n piety_n or_o dignity_n of_o vocation_n if_o he_o be_v not_o than_o he_o be_v much_o more_o subject_a to_o error_n than_o they_o who_o notwithstanding_o have_v gross_o and_o palpable_o err_v i_o add_v also_o that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o overmuch_o in_o judge_v of_o such_o high_a matter_n and_o in_o censure_v his_o learned_a doctor_n when_o they_o say_v true_a and_o when_o they_o err_v moreover_o i_o think_v there_o be_v no_o man_n live_v which_o have_v not_o in_o some_o thing_n or_o other_o alter_v his_o judgement_n and_o vary_v from_o himself_o insomuch_o as_o he_o have_v deem_v false_a some_o thing_n which_o once_o seem_v to_o he_o true_a and_o judge_v other_o true_a which_o once_o he_o think_v false_a which_o if_o it_o be_v so_o what_o wiseman_n in_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n as_o be_v his_o faith_n and_o religion_n will_v trust_v his_o own_o judgement_n for_o wherefore_o may_v not_o he_o err_v in_o one_o point_n as_o well_o as_o in_o a_o other_o now_o if_o he_o do_v err_v in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o faith_n and_o religion_n what_o will_v be_v come_v of_o his_o soul_n everlasting_o if_o he_o do_v not_o alter_v his_o course_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v every_o follower_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n for_o the_o reason_n assign_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o mistrust_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o belief_n or_o which_o be_v yet_o less_o not_o to_o be_v so_o peremptory_a and_o obstinate_a in_o his_o faith_n that_o he_o will_v not_o with_o indifferency_n hear_v or_o read_v any_o thing_n that_o make_v against_o it_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o now_o crave_v of_o my_o courteous_a reader_n a_o catalogve_n of_o the_o principal_a counsel_n which_o be_v celebrate_v within_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_n year_n after_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o also_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o most_o famous_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n who_o flourish_v within_o the_o say_a term_n of_o year_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o work_n of_o cardinal_n baronius_n and_o other_o approve_a author_n a_o africanum_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v anno_fw-la 403._o agathense_o concilium_fw-la celebrate_v anno_fw-la 506._o agathias_n hystoricus_n flourish_v anno_o 566._o alexander_n 1_o papa_n suffer_v anno_fw-la 131._o ambrose_n episcopus_fw-la mediolan_n die_v a_o 397._o amphylochius_n iconij_fw-la episcopus_fw-la flourish_v a_o 394._o ancyranum_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 314._o andegavense_a concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 453._o antiochenum_fw-la conciliabulum_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 341._o antisidiorense_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 590._o antonius_n abbess_n die_v a_o 358._o aquileiense_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 381._o arator_fw-la subdiaconus_fw-la flourish_v a_o 544._o aransicanum_fw-la concilium_fw-la 1._o celebrate_v a_o 441._o aransicanum_fw-la concilium_fw-la 2._o celebrate_a a_o 463._o arelatense_n concilium_fw-la 1._o celebrate_v a_o 314._o arelatense_n concilium_fw-la 2._o celebrate_v about_o the_o year_n 330._o arelatense_n concilium_fw-la 3._o celebrate_v a_o 453._o arnobius_n rhetor_n flourish_v a_o 302._o athanasius_n episcopus_fw-la die_v a_o 372._o aruernense_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 541._o augustinus_n episcopus_fw-la doctor_n die_v a_o 430._o auitus_n viennensis_n die_v about_o the_o year_n 516._o aurelianense_n concilium_fw-la 1._o celebrate_v a_o 507._o aurelianense_n concilium_fw-la 2._o celebrate_a a_o 536._o aurelianense_n concilium_fw-la 3._o celebrate_v a_o 540._o aurelianense_n concilium_fw-la 4._o celebrate_v about_o the_o year_n 545._o aurelianense_n concilium_fw-la 5._o celebrate_a a_o 552._o b_o barcionense_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 599._o basilius_n episcopus_fw-la doctor_n died_z a_o 378._o benedictus_fw-la abbas_n die_v a_o 543._o boaetius_fw-la senator_n died_z a_o 526._o bracharense_n concilium_fw-la 1._o celebrate_v a_o 563._o bracharense_n concilium_fw-la 2._o celebrate_a a_o 572._o brennacense_v concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 583._o bicharensis_fw-la abbas_n flourish_v a_o 590._o byacenum_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 541._o c_o cabilonense_n concilium_fw-la celebrate_v a_o 582._o caesarius_n gregorij_fw-la frater_fw-la die_v about_o the_o year_n 368._o caesarius_n arelatensis_fw-la die_v a_o 544._o caesar_n augustanum_fw-la concilium_fw-la 1._o celebrate_v a_o 381._o caesar_n augustanum_fw-la concilium_fw-la 2._o celebrate_a a_o 592._o carpetoradense_a concilium_fw-la celebrate_v about_o the_o year_n 463._o carthaginense_n concilium_fw-la 1._o celebrate_v a_o 348._o carthaginense_n concilium_fw-la 2._o celebrate_a a_o 435._o carthaginense_n concilium_fw-la 3._o celebrate_v a_o 397._o carthaginense_n concilium_fw-la 4._o celebrate_a a_o 398._o carthaginense_n concilium_fw-la 5._o celebrate_a a_o 398._o carthaginense_n concilium_fw-la 6._o celebrate_a a_o 401._o carthaginense_n concilium_fw-la 7._o celebrate_v about_o the_o year_n 416_o carthaginense_n aliud_fw-la celebrate_v about_o the_o year_n 418._o cassianus_n monachus_n flourish_v a_o 433._o
he_o upon_o his_o holy_a spouse_n our_o mother_n the_o church_n now_o what_o court_n in_o the_o world_n represent_v the_o whole_a church_n if_o not_o a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o her_o visible_a head_n either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o his_o legate_n with_o a_o great_a part_n of_o her_o chief_a pastor_n and_o prelate_n who_o represent_v not_o only_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o which_o they_o have_v charge_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a body_n be_v assemble_v what_o assembly_n be_v above_o this_o what_o decree_n be_v so_o firm_a and_o of_o such_o eminent_a authority_n as_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o such_o a_o council_n very_o see_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o she_o do_v in_o no_o superior_a court_n pronounce_v her_o sentence_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o be_v the_o court_n in_o which_o all_o controversy_n touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n with_o warrant_n of_o infallible_a and_o divine_a truth_n be_v final_o decide_v and_o end_v furthermore_o if_o christ_n vicar_n on_o earth_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o general_a precept_n of_o manner_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n do_v he_o enjoy_v this_o privilege_n if_o helgate_n can_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v we_o think_v she_o so_o invincible_a if_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v as_o christ_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v we_o hearken_v unto_o they_o 2._o math._n 18._o verse_n 20._o see_v before_o chap._n 6._o section_n 2._o and_o yield_v they_o such_o obedience_n if_o when_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o according_a to_o his_o own_o promise_n how_o shall_v we_o think_v he_o absent_a from_o a_o general_a council_n if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v teach_v the_o church_n all_o truth_n when_o if_o not_o in_o a_o general_a council_n do_v he_o so_o instruct_v and_o direct_v she_o final_o if_o the_o bishop_n &_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v themselves_o how_o can_v they_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n they_o shall_v according_o to_o the_o ordination_n of_o christ_n etc._n ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 11._o etc._n etc._n keep_v all_o the_o whole_a church_n from_o waver_v and_o error_n in_o faith_n hence_o the_o decision_n of_o a_o general_a council_n have_v ever_o have_v three_o principal_a prerogative_n give_v it_o by_o all_o allow_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n which_o may_v also_o manifest_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n itself_o first_o that_o it_o be_v as_o be_v aforesaid_a the_o supreme_a and_o last_o judicial_a sentence_n of_o the_o church_n from_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o appeal_n and_o which_o by_o no_o mean_n can_v be_v make_v void_a or_o recall_v this_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o epictetum_n of_o athan_n epist_n ad_fw-la epictetum_n s._n athanasius_n the_o great_a scholar_n and_o the_o most_o principal_a champion_n of_o his_o age_n against_o the_o arian_n who_o in_o a_o epistle_n recite_v also_o by_o damasunt_fw-la by_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 77._o see_v also_o hieron_n epist_n 57_o ad_fw-la damasunt_fw-la s._n epiphanius_n wonder_v how_o certain_a dare_v move_v any_o question_n concern_v thing_n define_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n much_o more_o will_v he_o have_v wonder_v if_o in_o his_o day_n any_o man_n have_v write_v as_o field_n now_o have_v do_v that_o 5._o that_o field_n book_n 4._o c._n 12._o and_o 5._o after_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o council_n have_v pass_v a_o man_n may_v still_o doubt_v and_o refuse_v to_o believe_v without_o heretical_a pertinacy_n yea_o he_o avouch_v that_o counsel_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n but_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n add_v this_o reason_n why_o he_o thus_o marvel_v to_o wit_n because_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o counsel_n can_v be_v alter_v without_o error_n s._n augustine_n say_v 162._o say_v aug._n epist_n 162._o a_o general_a council_n be_v the_o last_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n martianun_n church_n leo_fw-la episto_fw-la 50._o ad_fw-la martianun_n s._n leo_n reque_v of_o martianus_n the_o emperor_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v define_v in_o general_a counsel_n may_v not_o be_v reverse_a or_o recall_v which_o also_o the_o say_a catho_fw-la say_a l._n nemo_n cap._n the_o sum_n trinit_fw-la et_fw-la fide_fw-la catho_fw-la martianus_n ratefied_a by_o his_o imperial_a constitution_n the_o same_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o general_a counsel_n of_o finen_n of_o concilium_fw-la ephesinun_n circa_fw-la finen_n ephesus_n and_o ult._n and_o concilium_fw-la chalcedom_n act_n 5._o can_n ult._n chalcedon_n second_o those_o be_v censure_v by_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n to_o be_v heretic_n who_o disobey_v the_o decree_n of_o such_o counsel_n and_o first_o all_o general_a counsel_n denounce_v anathema_n to_o they_o and_o accurse_v those_o that_o shall_v contradict_v their_o definition_n which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v without_o error_n upon_o a_o mere_a persuasion_n without_o infallible_a assurance_n of_o divine_a truth_n in_o their_o say_a definition_n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a do_v so_o it_o be_v record_v by_o affricae_n by_o athanas_n epistol_n ad_fw-la episcopos_fw-la affricae_n s._n athanasius_n and_o the_o act_n of_o other_o such_o counsel_n evident_o prove_v the_o same_o proceed_n in_o they_o the_o judgement_n of_o anatho_n of_o leo_fw-la epi._n 78._o ad_fw-la leonem_fw-la imp._n see_v be_v also_o in_o epist_n 77._o add_v anatho_n s._n leo_n be_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v number_v among_o catholic_n that_o resist_v the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o chalcedon_n 87._o chalcedon_n basil_n epist_n 87._o s._n basil_n will_v catholic_n to_o propound_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o those_o that_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n because_o by_o this_o it_o will_v have_v appear_v whether_o they_o be_v heretic_n or_o catholic_n 18._o catholic_n august_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la cap._n 18._o s._n augustine_n excuse_v s._n cyprian_n from_o heresy_n only_o for_o this_o reason_n that_o his_o opinion_n touch_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n be_v not_o condemn_v by_o any_o general_a council_n 24._o council_n greg._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 24._o s._n gregory_n denounce_v anathema_n to_o those_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o five_o general_a councle_n which_o only_o be_v celebrate_v before_o his_o day_n unto_o this_o i_o add_v that_o all_o christian_a catholic_a emperor_n by_o their_o constitution_n adjudge_v such_o as_o heretic_n and_o make_v they_o subject_a to_o the_o punishment_n of_o such_o miscreant_n that_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o definition_n of_o general_a counsel_n he_o be_v wicked_a and_o sacralegeous_a say_v chalced._n say_v martian_a et_fw-la valem_fw-la in_o edicto_fw-la ad_fw-la palladium_n praefectum_fw-la praetorio_fw-la edicto_fw-la quod_fw-la extat_fw-la act_n 3._o sinodi_fw-la chalced._n martianus_n and_o valentinianus_n who_o after_o the_o sentence_n of_o so_o many_o bishop_n do_v say_v any_o thing_n according_a to_o his_o own_o opinion_n yea_o at_o all_o time_n such_o as_o be_v condemn_v by_o such_o counsel_n as_o heretic_n have_v be_v so_o esteem_v by_o all_o sort_n although_o not_o so_o censure_v before_o and_o not_o only_o in_o that_o age_n in_o which_o they_o be_v so_o condemn_v but_o in_o all_o age_n follow_v and_o both_o these_o assertion_n may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o sentence_n of_o our_o lord_n 7._o lord_n math._n 10_o 7._o he_o that_o shall_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o publican_n for_o he_o that_o disobey_v the_o church_n assemble_v in_o this_o supreme_a court_n be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v think_v a_o christian_a or_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o any_o other_o trial_n but_o to_o be_v esteem_v a_o heretic_n and_o a_o infidel_n three_o by_o the_o same_o counsel_n and_o father_n the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v divine_a and_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o not_o subject_a to_o error_n the_o father_n assemble_v in_o the_o most_o ancient_a counsel_n avouch_v the_o say_v counsel_n to_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n constantini_n ghost_n epist_n ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la apud_fw-la eusebium_n li._n 3._o de_fw-la vita_fw-la constantini_n constantine_n the_o great_a call_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a heavenly_a precept_n affricae_n precept_n athan_n epistola_fw-la ad_fw-la episcopos_fw-la affricae_n s._n athanasius_n write_v that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a remain_v for_o ever_o athanas_n ever_o nazian_n orat_fw-la in_o athanas_n s._n gregory_n nazianzene_n tell_v
the_o high_a priest_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n have_v his_o seat_n and_o principal_a residence_n in_o jerusalem_n their_o chief_a city_n so_o the_o truth_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o jew_n and_o deliver_v to_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o the_o see_v of_o the_o high_a priest_n shall_v be_v place_v in_o rome_n the_o principal_a city_n of_o the_o gentile_n reason_n also_o prove_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o supreme_a visible_a governor_n in_o the_o church_n for_o see_v that_o nothing_o almost_o be_v more_o necessary_a for_o the_o preservation_n and_o good_a government_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n than_o a_o mean_a and_o provision_n to_o keep_v unity_n in_o the_o same_o nothing_o more_o hurtful_a 18._o math._n 12._o verse_n 25._o mark_v 3._o verse_n 24._o luke_n 11._o verse_n 18._o than_o rebellion_n sedition_n and_o discord_n for_o every_o kingdom_n as_o truth_n itself_o affirm_v divide_v against_o itself_o shall_v be_v make_v desolate_a and_o every_o city_n or_o house_n divide_v against_o itself_o shall_v not_o stand_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o our_o redeemer_n the_o wise_a and_o most_o prudent_a lawmaker_n that_o ever_o live_v in_o the_o world_n in_o establish_v his_o church_n or_o kingdom_n which_o be_v to_o be_v peaceable_a glorious_a and_o everlasting_a and_o which_o be_v also_o his_o spiritual_a body_n and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n likewise_o to_o be_v unite_v in_o one_o have_v a_o principal_a regard_n that_o the_o member_n of_o his_o commonwealth_n and_o body_n shall_v be_v link_v together_o in_o peace_n and_o concord_n and_o not_o rend_v a_o sunder_o by_o schism_n division_n or_o diversity_n of_o faith_n out_o of_o which_o ground_n i_o frame_v this_o argument_n christ_n without_o all_o doubt_n ordain_v a_o mean_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n in_o his_o church_n but_o unity_n can_v be_v preserve_v in_o it_o without_o one_o visible_a head_n have_v jurisdiction_n over_o it_o all_o therefore_o christ_n ordain_v one_o such_o visible_a head_n and_o this_o one_o head_n be_v during_o the_o time_n of_o his_o life_n the_o bless_a apostle_n s._n peter_n who_o be_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o furnish_v with_o all_o necessary_a quality_n for_o the_o execution_n and_o performance_n of_o this_o high_a office_n and_o dignity_n and_o all_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o what_o condition_n whatsoever_o be_v bind_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o precept_n of_o manner_n concern_v good_a and_o evil_a to_o obey_v he_o this_o reason_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v caluin_n before_o confess_v be_v that_o which_o move_v god_n in_o the_o old_a law_n to_o appoint_v one_o prelate_n above_o the_o rest_n and_o for_o the_o superiority_n of_o one_o in_o the_o new_a law_n it_o be_v long_o since_o assign_v by_o luciferianos_fw-la by_o hieron_n adversus_fw-la jovinianun_n hieron_n adver_v luciferianos_fw-la s._n hierome_n who_o concern_v this_o matter_n use_v these_o word_n for_o this_o cause_n one_o be_v choose_v among_o the_o twelve_o that_o a_o head_n be_v appoint_v occasion_n of_o schism_n be_v take_v away_o and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o health_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n unto_o who_o if_o some_o certain_a power_n cornelium_n power_n exhort_v et_fw-la ab_fw-la homini_fw-la eminens_fw-la cyprian_n epist_n 55._o ad_fw-la cornelium_n peerless_a and_o above_o man_n be_v not_o give_v there_o will_v be_v as_o many_o schism_n in_o church_n as_o priest_n but_o long_o before_o he_o the_o same_o be_v note_v by_o s._n cyprian_n who_o affirm_v that_o heresy_n and_o schism_n rise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o that_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n be_v not_o obey_v and_o that_o one_o priest_n and_o judge_n in_o christ_n place_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v in_o another_o epistle_n he_o have_v this_o sentence_n eccles_n sentence_n cip._n epi._n 4._o see_v he_o also_o de_fw-la unita_fw-la eccles_n god_n be_v one_o and_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o chair_n be_v one_o by_o our_o lord_n voice_n found_v on_o peter_n there_o can_v no_o other_o altar_n be_v erect_v or_o new_a priesthood_n be_v make_v beside_o the_o one_o altar_n and_o one_o priesthood_n whosoever_o do_v elsewhere_a gather_v do_v disperse_v and_o be_v it_o not_o apparent_a except_o there_o be_v some_o one_o superior_a that_o may_v keep_v unity_n and_o uniformity_n who_o all_o the_o rest_n ought_v to_o obey_v that_o schism_n division_n and_o rebellion_n will_v present_o ensue_v will_v not_o every_o one_o believe_v do_v and_o change_v as_o he_o please_v will_v one_o conform_v himself_o to_o another_o certain_o he_o will_v not_o of_o which_o will_v follow_v as_o many_o distinct_a faith_n and_o religion_n as_o there_o be_v head_n and_o fancy_n and_o of_o this_o we_o see_v most_o manifest_a proof_n among_o our_o adversary_n who_o for_o want_v of_o one_o head_n over_o they_o all_o be_v divide_v into_o almost_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o sect_n without_o any_o hope_n or_o mean_v of_o reconciliation_n 3._o reconciliation_n treatise_n of_o the_o definition_n &_o note_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 3._o as_o in_o another_o place_n i_o will_v declare_v at_o large_a but_o let_v we_o exemplify_v a_o little_a in_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o in_o this_o kingdom_n the_o puritan_n have_v a_o long_a time_n by_o all_o mean_v endeavour_v to_o conform_v our_o protestant_a church_n to_o their_o genevian_a platform_n of_o discipline_n but_o what_o answer_n make_v a_o learned_a protestant_n unto_o they_o very_o he_o demand_v of_o they_o 491_o they_o whitgif_n in_o his_o ans_fw-fr to_o the_o admonit_a pa._n 138._o §_o 1._o and_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o say_v a_o swe_n tract_n 20._o p._n 702_o and_o tract_n 9_o c._n 1._o pa._n 481._o c._n 2._o §_o 6._o p._n 491_o unto_o which_o reform_a church_n they_o will_v have_v the_o english_a church_n frame_v and_o why_o other_o reform_a church_n shall_v not_o as_o well_o frame_v themselves_o unto_o the_o form_n of_o the_o english_a church_n for_o say_v he_o we_o be_v as_o well_o assure_v of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o have_v as_o good_a ground_n and_o reason_n for_o our_o do_n as_o they_o have_v he_o add_v i_o tell_v you_o again_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o this_o church_n of_o england_n either_o for_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n sincerity_n of_o public_a divine_a service_n and_o other_o policy_n shall_v give_v place_n to_o any_o church_n in_o christendom_n and_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o we_o be_v as_o near_o join_v with_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n as_o the_o member_n be_v to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o body_n to_o the_o head_n such_o be_v the_o answer_n of_o this_o protestant_n to_o the_o puritan_n the_o like_a may_v the_o puritan_n make_v un_fw-fr the_o protestant_n and_o lutheran_n zwinglians_n and_o other_o sectary_n to_o they_o both_o and_o this_o make_v they_o as_o i_o have_v say_v to_o remain_v in_o deadly_a dissension_n which_o evil_a if_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v one_o head_n will_v easy_o be_v remedy_v and_o remove_v this_o reason_n among_o other_o move_v the_o ancient_a &c_n ancient_a justin_n in_o ora_fw-la exhor_n cip._n tract_n de_fw-fr idol_n va_fw-fr nit_n atha_n adver_v ido_fw-it nas_fw-la orati_fw-la philo_n l._n de_fw-la confus_fw-la lingu_n plat._n in_o polit_fw-la arist_n l._n 8._o ethni_fw-la c._n 10._o l._n 12._o philos_fw-la &c_n &c_n father_n yea_o the_o heathen_a philosopher_n themselves_o to_o affirm_v that_o monarchia_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o government_n by_o one_o chief_a head_n be_v the_o best_a and_o chief_a moreover_o this_o preservation_n of_o unity_n in_o general_n be_v use_v as_o a_o special_a argument_n of_o great_a force_n and_o moment_n by_o some_o of_o our_o 8._o our_o survey_v of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipline_n cap._n 8._o english_a protestant_n against_o the_o puritan_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o primat_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n for_o they_o affirm_v such_o officer_n to_o be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o unity_n and_o peace_n in_o it_o be_v preserve_v then_o preserve_v field_n book_n 3._o c._n 39_o §_o thus_o then_o because_o the_o unity_n and_o peace_n of_o each_o particular_a church_n of_o god_n say_v field_n and_o flock_v of_o his_o sheep_n depend_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o though_o there_o be_v many_o presbyter_n yet_o there_o be_v one_o bishop_n among_o the_o rest_n to_o who_o a_o eminent_a and_o peerless_a power_n be_v give_v for_o the_o avoid_v of_o schism_n and_o faction_n thus_o field_n 1600._o field_n will._n in_o his_o sinopsis_n controver_n 5._o qu._n 3._o part_n 2._o in_o the_o appendix_n pag_n 237._o edit_n 1600._o willet_n word_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n be_v these_o the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v very_o necessary_a for_o the_o
the_o word_n preiest_n but_o when_o speech_n be_v of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n bring_v the_o whole_a bible_n they_o use_v not_o the_o word_n priest_n but_o in_o place_n of_o it_o read_v elder_a they_o say_v that_o the_o greek_a word_n presbyter_n signify_v a_o elder_a and_o not_o a_o priest_n i_o answer_v that_o although_o this_o word_n if_o we_o run_v to_o the_o first_o signification_n of_o it_o signify_v a_o elder_a wherefore_o the_o latin_a interpreter_n of_o our_o vulgar_a edition_n translate_v it_o sometime_o seniour_n or_o ancient_n yet_o by_o ecclesiastical_a use_n 181._o see_v the_o first_o counc._n of_o nice_a bilson_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o christ_n church_n cap._n 11._o pag._n 181._o and_o apostolic_a authority_n as_o appear_v in_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n work_n ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n church_n it_o have_v be_v appropriate_v to_o signify_v a_o priest_n no_o less_o than_o episcopus_fw-la to_o signify_v a_o bishop_n and_o diaconus_fw-la a_o deacon_n and_o hence_o almost_o in_o all_o language_n the_o word_n which_o signify_v a_o priest_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o greek_a word_n presbyter_n neither_o do_v the_o first_o founder_n of_o the_o church_n without_o cause_n appropriate_v this_o word_n to_o signify_v man_n of_o this_o function_n for_o it_o be_v do_v to_o distinguish_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a law_n from_o those_o of_o the_o old_a which_o long_o after_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n keep_v their_o office_n and_o perhaps_o also_o to_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o gentile_n with_o who_o the_o world_n be_v replenish_v but_o concern_v this_o matter_n i_o can_v but_o note_v the_o folly_n and_o oversight_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o term_n their_o elder_n minister_n and_o their_o deacon_n deacon_n whereas_o the_o greek_a word_n deacon_n signify_v proper_o a_o minister_n wherefore_o a_o minister_n and_o a_o deacon_n in_o very_a truth_n be_v all_o one_o and_o they_o according_a to_o their_o proceed_n shall_v have_v term_v their_o minister_n not_o minister_n but_o elder_n and_o their_o deacon_n minister_n beside_o this_o sometime_o they_o translate_v and_o read_v minister_n whereas_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a they_o shall_v read_v priest_n as_o ecclesiast_fw-la 7._o 1595._o bibl._n 1595._o vers_fw-la 29._o whereas_o they_o shall_v read_v priest_n they_o read_v honour_v his_o minister_n contrary_a to_o themselves_o in_o the_o 31._o verse_n follow_v 1562._o bibl._n 1562._o to_o the_o same_o end_n they_o call_v s._n peter_n and_o s._n john_n layman_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n call_v they_o only_o unlearned_a or_o unlitterated_a act._n 4._o vers_fw-la 13._o but_o this_o be_v amend_v in_o the_o edition_n of_o the_o year_n 1595._o and_o 1600._o for_o their_o puritan_n election_n of_o minister_n whereas_o act._n 1._o vers_fw-la 26._o 1595._o bibl._n 1600._o &_o in_o some_o bible_n before_o amend_v in_o the_o bible_n 1595._o bible_n 1595._o bibl._n 1592._o amend_v in_o the_o text_n of_o the_o bible_n 1595._o we_o read_v according_a to_o the_o greek_a that_o s._n mathias_n be_v number_v with_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n they_o translate_v that_o he_o be_v by_o common_a consent_n count_v with_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n the_o like_a corruption_n be_v act._n 14._o vers_fw-la 23._o moreover_o against_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n 1._o timoth._n 4._o vers_fw-la 14._o and_o 2._o tim._n 1._o vers_fw-la 6._o in_o steed_n of_o grace_n they_o read_v gift_n to_o prove_v that_o priest_n may_v lawful_o marry_v whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1._o corinth_n 9_o vers_fw-la 5._o that_o he_o may_v have_v lead_v about_o a_o woman_n a_o sister_n they_o read_v a_o wife_n be_v a_o sister_n and_o this_o notwithstanding_o 1._o corinth_n 7._o vers_fw-la 1._o where_o the_o apostle_n use_v the_o self_n same_o greek_a word_n they_o read_v not_o it_o be_v good_a for_o a_o man_n not_o to_o touch_v a_o wife_n but_o it_o be_v good_a for_o a_o man_n not_o to_o touch_v a_o woman_n 1595._o see_v beza_n annot_fw-mi in_o mat._n 5._o vers_fw-la 28._o bible_n 1595._o 1600._o philip._n 4._o v._n 3._o bible_n 1577._o 1600._o 1595._o because_o otherwise_o it_o will_v make_v against_o their_o doctrine_n of_o marriage_n to_o this_o purpose_n also_o they_o make_v s._n paul_n say_v as_o to_o his_o wife_n i_o beseech_v thou_o also_o faithful_a good_a fellow_n whereas_o his_o word_n signify_v a_o sincere_a companion_n and_o so_o caluin_n and_o beza_n translate_v they_o further_o to_o the_o same_o end_n be_v that_o their_o translation_n of_o the_o 4._o verse_n of_o the_o 13._o chapter_n to_o the_o hebrew_n wedlock_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o man_n or_o as_o they_o have_v in_o another_o edition_n something_o amend_v the_o matter_n marriage_n be_v honourable_a in_o al._n for_o in_o the_o first_o translation_n they_o add_v two_o word_n to_o the_o sentence_n be_v and_o man_n and_o in_o the_o last_o the_o the_o word_n be_v and_o so_o they_o turn_v clean_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o rather_o be_v let_v marriage_n be_v honourable_a in_o all_o to_o wit_n in_o those_o that_o be_v marry_v so_o they_o themselves_o translate_v the_o next_o verse_n 1600._o bible_n 1600._o let_v your_o conversation_n etc._n etc._n the_o like_a corruption_n may_v be_v see_v mat._n 16._o v._n 11._o the_o priest_n lip_n say_v malachias_n the_o prophet_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n etc._n etc._n they_o read_v shall_v keep_v knowledge_n s._n paul_n affirm_v 1595._o malach._n 2._o v._o 7._o bibl._n 1592._o correct_v in_o the_o bibl_n of_o the_o year_n 1595._o bibl._n 1595._o and_o 1600._o bibl._n 1600._o bibl._n 1595._o that_o he_o release_v the_o penance_n of_o the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n they_o translate_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o christ_n and_o put_v in_o the_o margin_n this_o exposition_n that_o be_v true_o and_o from_o my_o hart_n even_o as_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n contrary_a to_o the_o greek_a and_o also_o to_o the_o apostle_n himself_o who_o 1._o corint_fw-la 5._o vers_fw-la 4._o excommunicate_v the_o say_a person_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o name_n and_o with_o the_o virtue_n or_o power_n as_o they_o translate_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n see_v also_o mich._n 5._o vers_fw-la 3._o because_o their_o liberty_n can_v endure_v any_o painful_a satisfaction_n for_o sin_n for_o do_v penance_n and_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o penance_n they_o translate_v 11_o mat._n 3_o 2.8_o luke_n 3._o v._o 8._o act._n 17_o 30._o apoc._n 2_o 21._o and_o 22._o cap._n 16_o 9_o &_o 11_o repent_v and_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o amendment_n of_o life_n and_o repentance_n they_o say_v that_o the_o greek_a word_n signify_v as_o they_o translate_v but_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n and_o all_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n tell_v we_o the_o contrary_a neither_o can_v they_o in_o some_o place_n translate_v the_o greek_a word_n otherwise_o then_o we_o do_v as_o math._n 11._o vers_fw-la 21._o luk_n 10._o vers_fw-la 13._o 2._o corint_fw-la 7._o vers_fw-la 9_o where_o it_o must_v needs_o signify_v sorrowful_a painful_a and_o satisfactory_a repentance_n i_o grant_v that_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v speak_v of_o god_n and_o the_o damn_a must_v be_v otherwise_o translate_v but_o this_o be_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n for_o neither_o in_o such_o place_n can_v it_o be_v translate_v as_o our_o adversary_n translate_v it_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v for_o god_n and_o the_o damn_a amend_v not_o their_o life_n dan._n 10._o vers_fw-la 12._o for_o afflict_v thyself_o contrary_a to_o the_o hebrew_n greek_a and_o latin_a they_o read_v 1600._o bible_n 1600._o humble_v thyself_o 1595._o bible_n 1595._o esdras_n 9_o vers_fw-la 5._o for_o affliction_n they_o read_v heaviness_n dan._n 4._o in_o like_a sort_n contrary_a to_o all_o the_o say_a text_n in_o steed_n of_o redeem_v thy_o sin_n with_o alm_n 14._o bible_n 1595._o 1600._o jam._n 5._o v._n 14._o they_o read_v break_v off_o thy_o sin_n with_o righteousness_n see_v another_o corruption_n tit._n 3._o vers_fw-la 8._o against_o confession_n whereas_o s._n james_n say_v be_v a_o man_n sick_a among_o you_o let_v he_o bring_v in_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o after_o vers_n 16._o confess_v therefore_o your_o sin_n one_o to_o another_o 1595._o bible_n 1595._o they_o translate_v thus_o be_v any_o disease_v among_o you_o let_v he_o call_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o vers_n 16._o knowledge_n your_o fault_n one_o to_o another_o and_o although_o they_o seem_v to_o esteem_v so_o high_o of_o marriage_n yet_o they_o common_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n wherefore_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o matrimony_n say_v 1595._o ephes_n 5_o 32._o bible_n 1595._o
by_o the_o divine_n of_o all_o age_n why_o christ_n permit_v himself_o to_o dread_v so_o much_o the_o corporal_a death_n which_o he_o be_v to_o suffer_v yet_o caluin_n avouch_v that_o he_o be_v a_o very_a dastard_a and_o a_o coward_n if_o he_o fear_v not_o eternal_a damnation_n let_v this_o then_o be_v the_o first_o proposition_n make_v of_o caluins_n word_n if_o christ_n fear_v not_o the_o curse_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n he_o be_v more_o tender_a and_o more_o fearful_a than_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o rascal_n sort_n of_o man_n for_o thief_n and_o other_o evil_a doer_n do_v obstinate_o haste_v to_o death_n many_o do_v with_o haughty_a courage_n despise_v it_o some_o other_o do_v mild_o suffer_v it_o whereas_o christ_n be_v astonish_v and_o in_o manner_n strike_v dead_a with_o fear_n of_o it_o how_o shameful_a a_o tenderness_n shall_v this_o have_v be_v say_v caluin_n to_o be_v so_o far_o torment_v for_o fear_n of_o a_o common_a death_n as_o to_o melt_v in_o bloody_a sweat_n and_o not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o be_v comfort_v but_o by_o sight_n of_o angel_n thus_o caluin_n the_o second_o proposition_n take_v from_o the_o english_a protestant_n be_v as_o follow_v but_o christ_n fear_v not_o the_o curse_n and_o wrath_n of_o god_n he_o never_o dread_v eternal_a damnation_n nor_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n now_o the_o conclusion_n follow_v therefore_o christ_n be_v more_o fearful_a than_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o rascal_n sort_n of_o man_n then_o thief_n and_o other_o evil_a doer_n his_o tenderness_n be_v shameful_a etc._n etc._n the_o first_o proposition_n as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v almost_o whole_o make_v of_o caluin_n own_o word_n that_o the_o second_o be_v hold_v true_a by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o english_a protestant_n lymbomastix_n sutcliffe_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o kellison_n ch_n 5._o pag._n 56._o see_v parkes_n also_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o rejoineder_n to_o lymbomastix_n i_o prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o m._n sutcliffe_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o mislike_v caluin_n particular_a opinion_n concern_v christ_n suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n so_o that_o the_o conclusion_n if_o both_o caluin_n and_o the_o english_a protestant_n say_v true_a can_v be_v avoid_v and_o thus_o i_o think_v it_o now_o sufficient_o prove_v that_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n have_v fall_v into_o some_o gross_a and_o notorious_a error_n which_o they_o have_v mainetain_v as_o true_a and_o holy_a doctrine_n i_o can_v if_o it_o be_v needful_a and_o convenient_a in_o this_o place_n show_v the_o like_o concern_v all_o their_o disciple_n i_o mean_v that_o they_o gross_o have_v err_v and_o err_v in_o some_o one_o point_n or_o other_o concern_v faith_n &_o religion_n but_o first_o the_o follower_n of_o every_o sect_n will_v &_o do_v grant_v this_o concern_v all_o other_o but_o those_o of_o their_o own_o belief_n for_o this_o the_o lutheran_n confess_v true_a of_o all_o the_o sacramentary_n the_o sacramentary_n of_o all_o the_o lutheran_n the_o english_a protestant_n of_o the_o puritan_n and_o the_o puritan_n of_o the_o english_a protestant_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o fountain_n of_o their_o bitter_a invective_n and_o book_n write_v one_o against_o the_o other_o so_o that_o as_o i_o say_v if_o a_o man_n will_v believe_v they_o all_o they_o all_o hold_v some_o one_o or_o more_o absurd_a and_o erroneous_a opinion_n second_o it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o any_o one_o although_o but_o mean_o read_v in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n and_o i_o have_v partly_o declare_v already_o before_o that_o most_o sect_n do_v as_o yet_o follow_v the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o their_o sect-master_n as_o the_o lutheran_n of_o luther_n the_o zwinglian_o of_o zwinglius_fw-la the_o caluinist_n of_o caluin_n wherefore_o see_v that_o i_o must_v also_o be_v mindful_a that_o i_o write_v a_o preface_n and_o not_o a_o volume_n let_v other_o pass_v i_o will_v only_o say_v a_o word_n or_o two_o in_o particular_a touch_v the_o english_a sectary_n who_o among_o all_o other_o member_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n be_v only_o like_a to_o come_v to_o the_o sight_n and_o read_n of_o this_o my_o preface_n and_o be_v it_o not_o easy_o prove_v that_o the_o principal_a writer_n and_o upholder_n of_o the_o english_a church_n have_v notorious_o fall_v into_o error_n who_o of_o this_o company_n while_o they_o live_v be_v comparable_a to_o jewel_n fulke_n and_o whitaker_n and_o do_v not_o all_o these_o 211._o these_o jewel_n against_o harding_n art_n 17._o division_n 14_o fulke_n against_o martin_n p._n 64_o 65._o in_o fine_a whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o duraeus_n pag._n 559._o add_v by_o stock_n to_o his_o answer_n of_o campian_n 8._o reason_n p._n 211._o hold_n that_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n according_a to_o his_o divinity_n and_o godhead_n but_o what_o follow_v of_o this_o but_o that_o as_o arius_n affirm_v according_a to_o his_o godhead_n he_o be_v inferior_a to_o his_o father_n for_o no_o one_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o his_o equal_a unto_o this_o i_o add_v that_o 11._o that_o fulke_o upon_o the_o rheims_n testam_fw-la math_n 27._o v._o 3._o act._n 3_o vers_fw-la 11._o fulke_n and_o 210._o and_o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campians_n 8._o reason_n pag._n 211._o 210._o whitaker_n open_o and_o stout_o maintain_v caluins_n doctrine_n concern_v christ_n dread_v everlasting_a damnation_n yea_o although_o they_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o caluin_n in_o make_v he_o if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o more_o fearful_a than_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o rascal_n sort_n of_o man_n yet_o the_o first_o of_o they_o avouce_v that_o if_o the_o fear_n of_o bodily_a pain_n and_o death_n only_o have_v cause_v that_o agony_n in_o the_o garden_n he_o have_v be_v of_o great_a infirmity_n than_o many_o of_o his_o servant_n the_o other_o have_v almost_o the_o like_a sentence_n but_o above_o all_o other_o 20._o other_o willet_n in_o his_o synopsis_n print_v a_o 1600._o controver_n 20._o willet_n pass_v in_o defend_v caluin_n blaspheamy_n in_o so_o much_o as_o a_o man_n may_v well_o marvel_v that_o his_o book_n be_v suffer_v to_o be_v read_v among_o christian_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o english_a sectary_n in_o general_n will_v any_o man_n endeavour_v to_o free_v they_o from_o all_o error_n very_o if_o none_o of_o they_o have_v fall_v into_o error_n it_o follow_v first_o that_o our_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o a_o schismatical_a synagogue_n this_o i_o prove_v after_o this_o sort_n the_o puritan_n in_o their_o christian_a and_o modest_a offer_n so_o they_o term_v it_o of_o a_o most_o indifferent_a conference_n tender_v not_o long_o since_o to_o the_o protestant_a archbishop_n bishop_n and_o all_o their_o adherent_n plain_o affirm_v that_o if_o their_o puritan_n proposition_n be_v deny_v and_o the_o protestant_n have_v the_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o have_v set_v down_o such_o proposition_n as_o they_o offer_v to_o maintain_v against_o the_o protestant_n among_o other_o just_a consideration_n as_o they_o pretend_v move_v they_o to_o make_v this_o offer_n in_o the_o sixth_o place_n they_o assign_v this_o for_o one_o 1606._o a_o christian_a and_o modest_a of_o fer_fw-fr etc._n etc._n pag._n 11._o publish_v anno_o 1606._o diverse_a of_o the_o aforesaid_a proposition_n be_v such_o say_v they_o that_o if_o the_o minister_n shall_v not_o constant_o hold_v and_o maintain_v the_o same_o against_o all_o man_n they_o can_v see_v how_o possible_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o divinity_n the_o separation_n of_o our_o church_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o from_o the_o pope_n the_o supreme_a head_n thereof_o can_v be_v justify_v and_o again_o in_o the_o eight_o consideration_n have_v yield_v a_o other_o reason_n wherefore_o they_o can_v but_o make_v opposition_n to_o the_o prelate_n in_o approve_v the_o proposition_n above_o specify_v 16._o ibid._n pag._n 16._o they_o add_v wherein_o if_o they_o the_o puritan_n minister_n who_o make_v this_o offer_n be_v in_o error_n and_o the_o prelate_n on_o the_o contrary_n have_v the_o truth_n they_o protest_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o they_o god_n and_o christ_n jesus_n himself_o have_v great_a wrong_n and_o indignity_n offer_v unto_o they_o in_o that_o they_o be_v reject_v and_o that_o all_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v schismatical_a in_o forsake_v unity_n and_o communion_n with_o they_o hitherto_o be_v the_o puritan_n word_n hence_o which_o be_v a_o point_n worthy_a to_o be_v note_v they_o promise_v their_o reconciliation_n unto_o we_o if_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o falsehood_n of_o their_o assertion_n which_o promise_v they_o make_v not_o to_o the_o english_a protestant_n for_o thus_o they_o
the_o son_n of_o aaron_n 7._o malac._n 2._o vers_fw-la 7._o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v require_v the_o law_n of_o his_o mouth_n so_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a who_o be_v to_o enjoy_v as_o great_a if_o not_o a_o great_a prerogative_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 11._o ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 11._o that_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v and_o ever_o will_v give_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v stand_v some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n in_o his_o church_n to_o direct_v we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o hence_o proceed_v this_o notable_a sentence_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n s._n ireneus_fw-la who_o for_o christian_a religion_n suffer_v martyrdom_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n two_o hundred_o and_o five_o 4._o iren._n li._n 3._o cap._n 4._o we_o ought_v not_o say_v he_o to_o seek_v among_o other_o the_o truth_n which_o we_o may_v easy_o take_v and_o receive_v from_o the_o church_n see_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v most_o full_o lay_v up_o in_o she_o as_o into_o a_o rich_a treasure_n house_n or_o place_n where_o the_o depositum_fw-la of_o the_o church_n be_v keep_v of_o which_o hereafter_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o truth_n that_o every_o man_n that_o will_v may_v take_v out_o of_o her_o the_o drink_n of_o life_n for_o this_o be_v the_o entrance_n of_o life_n but_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v thief_n and_o robber_n for_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v very_o to_o be_v avoid_v but_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o the_o church_n be_v with_o great_a diligence_n to_o be_v love_v and_o the_o tradition_n of_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v hitherto_o s._n ireneus_fw-la we_o say_v therefore_o that_o by_o the_o church_n we_o learn_v as_o certain_o what_o mystery_n have_v be_v reveal_v by_o christ_n as_o we_o shall_v do_v by_o our_o lord_n himself_o if_o he_o be_v conversant_a with_o we_o on_o earth_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o will_v be_v make_v most_o apparent_a by_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n follow_v chapter_n 6._o of_o the_o supreme_a and_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n section_n the_o first_o my_o principal_a intent_n in_o this_o treatise_n be_v as_o i_o have_v before_o declare_v to_o prove_v that_o we_o catholic_n only_o have_v true_a faith_n and_o that_o all_o sectary_n be_v bereave_v of_o this_o supernatural_a virtue_n wherefore_o have_v set_v down_o and_o make_v evident_a in_o the_o chapter_n next_o before_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o true_a faith_n it_o remain_v that_o i_o now_o begin_v in_o particular_a to_o discourse_v of_o these_o point_n and_o see_v that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v most_o assure_o build_v upon_o divine_a authority_n let_v we_o first_o behold_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a belief_n and_o see_v whether_o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o sufficient_a foundation_n for_o such_o a_o faith_n in_o the_o follower_n of_o that_o religion_n then_o let_v we_o do_v the_o like_o concern_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o new_a sectary_n but_o first_o i_o must_v note_v that_o although_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o we_o must_v true_o say_v that_o we_o know_v infallible_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n because_o we_o be_v so_o teach_v by_o the_o church_n yet_o that_o her_o authority_n be_v not_o limit_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o this_o matter_n only_o for_o it_o extend_v itself_o also_o to_o the_o definition_n of_o all_o particular_a matter_n of_o faith_n and_o may_v have_v for_o her_o object_n the_o verity_n themselves_o reveal_v it_o also_o condemn_v heresy_n and_o prescribe_v general_a precept_n of_o manner_n touch_v good_a and_o ill_a wherefore_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a build_v upon_o her_o authority_n not_o only_o his_o faith_n touch_v the_o point_n mention_v but_o also_o in_o some_o sort_n his_o whole_a belief_n and_o consequent_o all_o his_o internal_a virtue_n ground_v upon_o the_o same_o he_o rely_v likewise_o on_o her_o doctrine_n for_o his_o external_a carriage_n concern_v virtue_n and_o vice_n and_o final_o accept_v all_o her_o faith_n as_o infallible_o reveal_v by_o god_n himself_o who_o have_v make_v her_o supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n touch_v matter_n of_o religion_n and_o assure_v we_o that_o her_o judgement_n be_v not_o only_o certain_a and_o infallible_a but_o also_o through_o the_o perpetual_a assistance_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n divine_a so_o that_o god_n direct_v she_o in_o all_o truth_n and_o by_o she_o as_o a_o sensible_a guide_n he_o bestow_v the_o same_o benefit_n upon_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n wherefore_o our_o whole_a belief_n and_o religion_n in_o such_o sort_n depend_v of_o her_o infallible_a authority_n that_o if_o this_o be_v prove_v it_o convince_v that_o to_o be_v true_a sincere_a and_o divine_a for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o in_o building_n upon_o the_o tradition_n decision_n or_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n we_o ground_n our_o faith_n and_o religion_n upon_o divine_a authority_n if_o her_o decree_n be_v god_n and_o her_o doctrine_n warrant_v to_o be_v he_o let_v we_o therefore_o endeavour_v to_o show_v this_o that_o so_o with_o few_o word_n we_o may_v decide_v the_o whole_a question_n and_o to_o avoid_v confusion_n let_v we_o divide_v the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o chapter_n into_o the_o proof_n of_o some_o three_o or_o four_o assertion_n section_n the_o second_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n not_o by_o writing_n be_v commit_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o apostle_n first_o therefore_o i_o affirm_v that_o christ_n commit_v the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n not_o by_o write_v to_o his_o apostle_n &_o ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v deliver_v the_o same_o to_o their_o successor_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v manifest_a both_o because_o diverse_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o the_o apostle_n receive_v from_o christ_n be_v not_o record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n in_o their_o gospel_n and_o also_o because_o s._n luke_n witness_v 3._o act._n 1._o v._n 3._o that_o christ_n after_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n show_v himself_o alive_a to_o his_o apostle_n in_o many_o argument_n for_o forty_o day_n appear_v to_o they_o and_o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n of_o which_o his_o speech_n little_a or_o nothing_o be_v record_v i_o add_v moreover_o that_o not_o long_o before_o his_o ascension_n he_o give_v his_o apostle_n this_o commission_n go_v say_v he_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n 19.20_o mat._n 28._o v._n 19.20_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o these_o place_n i_o say_v manifest_o prove_v that_o christ_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n instruct_v his_o apostle_n concern_v the_o mystery_n and_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o according_a to_o his_o instruction_n command_v they_o to_o teach_v the_o whole_a world_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o record_n extant_a that_o christ_n give_v they_o these_o instruction_n in_o writing_n or_o that_o he_o command_v they_o to_o set_v they_o down_o and_o publish_v they_o after_o that_o sort_n yea_o if_o we_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n transgress_v christ_n commandment_n we_o must_v absolute_o say_v that_o he_o never_o bid_v they_o do_v any_o such_o thing_n because_o never_o any_o one_o of_o they_o as_o i_o will_v declare_v hereafter_o set_v down_o in_o write_v the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n no_o man_n likewise_o will_v or_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o ordination_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v deliver_v this_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o their_o successor_n for_o otherwise_o christ_n shall_v have_v institute_v a_o church_n only_o for_o the_o apostle_n day_n not_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o hence_o this_o sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n be_v most_o earnest_o commend_v to_o timothy_n 20._o 1._o tim._n ult_fw-la vers_fw-la 20._o o_o timothy_n say_v he_o keep_v the_o depositum_fw-la that_o be_v the_o pledge_n or_o pawn_v leave_v with_o thou_o avoid_v the_o profane_a novelty_n of_o voice_n and_o opposition_n of_o false_o call_v knowledge_n he_o call_v it_o depositum_fw-la or_o a_o pledge_n or_o pawn_v because_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n lay_v into_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n hand_n and_o commit_v unto_o they_o to_o keep_v which_o every_o one_o of_o they_o with_o great_a
most_o absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n themselves_o of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v note_v before_o erect_v not_o a_o church_n for_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_o but_o to_o continue_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o man_n in_o all_o age_n to_o come_v may_v have_v a_o mean_a to_o attain_v to_o salvation_n wherefore_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o speak_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n he_o speak_v also_o to_o all_o their_o successor_n 11._o ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 11._o for_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o have_v give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n and_o other_o some_o evangelist_n and_o other_o some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o this_o sense_n he_o promise_v his_o apostle_n as_o we_o read_v in_o s._n mathewes_n gospel_n that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v ult._n math._n 28._o vers_fw-la ult._n with_o they_o and_o those_o which_o shall_v succeed_v in_o their_o place_n wherefore_o saint_n hierome_n expound_v that_o sentence_n use_v these_o word_n mat._n hier._n lib._n 4._o in_o mat._n he_o who_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o his_o disciple_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n both_o show_v that_o they_o shall_v always_o live_v and_o also_o that_o he_o will_v never_o depart_v from_o the_o faithful_a saint_n augustine_n likewise_o affirm_v 2._o aug._n in_o ps_n 101._o conc_fw-fr 2._o that_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o signify_v us._n to_o the_o same_o effect_n epist_n effect_n cipr._n lib._n 4._o epist_n saint_n cyprian_n and_o 23._o and_o basi_fw-la consti_fw-la monast_n cap._n 23._o saint_n basil_n tell_v we_o that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n 16._o christ_n luc._n 10._o vers_fw-la 16._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o be_v speak_v not_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o to_o their_o successor_n final_o the_o word_n themselves_o of_o christ_n above_o cite_v be_v plain_a for_o how_o can_v the_o holy_a ghost_n remain_v here_o on_o earth_n with_o those_o apostle_n unto_o who_o christ_n speak_v for_o ever_o see_v that_o they_o live_v in_o the_o world_n but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n wherefore_o he_o remain_v with_o their_o successor_n the_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v succeed_v the_o first_o apostle_n as_o child_n their_o parent_n and_o with_o these_o he_o shall_v remain_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v endure_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o truth_n i_o add_v that_o this_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n be_v long_o since_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaie_v these_o word_n he_o use_v speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o god_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n 59_o isa_n 59_o my_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o thy_o mouth_n and_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n and_o of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n say_v our_o lord_n from_o hence_o forward_a and_o for_o ever_o hitherto_o the_o prophet_n isaie_v and_o what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o plain_a than_o this_o sure_o the_o promise_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o caluin_n himself_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o they_o grant_v as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v affirm_v thus_o he_o discourse_v expound_v the_o say_a word_n he_o promise_v say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v deprive_v of_o this_o inestimable_a good_a 59_o caluinus_n in_o isai_n cap._n 59_o but_o that_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o support_v with_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o soon_o after_o the_o promise_n be_v such_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v so_o assist_v the_o church_n and_o have_v such_o care_n of_o she_o that_o he_o will_v never_o suffer_v she_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o true_a doctrine_n thus_o far_o caluin_n final_o beza_n his_o scholar_n confess_v 4._o beza_n de_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la a_o civili_fw-la magistratu_fw-la puniendis_fw-la pa._n 69._o ire_fw-la li._n 1._o c._n 3._o li._n 3._o c._n 4._o that_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o make_v only_o to_o the_o apostle_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n let_v this_o therefore_o be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o argument_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o matter_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o she_o neither_o have_v fall_v nor_o can_v fall_v into_o any_o error_n and_o this_o be_v long_o since_o affirm_v by_o s._n ireneus_fw-la who_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o church_n keep_v with_o most_o sincere_a diligence_n the_o apostle_n faith_n &_o that_o which_o they_o preach_v and_o moreover_o that_o those_o church_n in_o which_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v find_v conserve_v and_o keep_v our_o faith_n floreatium_fw-la cipr._n epist_n 55._o ad_fw-la cor_fw-la nelium_fw-la see_v he_o likewise_o epist_n 69._o ad_fw-la floreatium_fw-la the_o same_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o s._n cyprian_n who_o avouch_v that_o the_o church_n always_o hold_v that_o which_o she_o first_o know_v section_n the_o four_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o other_o argument_n a_o other_o argument_n prove_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n we_o may_v take_v from_o the_o love_n and_o affection_n which_o christ_n bear_v to_o the_o say_a church_n for_o in_o the_o scripture_n we_o find_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o etc._n the_o cant._n 4._o ephes_n 1._o v._n 22._o etc._n etc._n husband_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o church_n his_o spouse_n and_o body_n 126._o august_n in_o psal_n 126._o for_o if_o we_o believe_v s._n augustine_n he_o form_v she_o out_o of_o his_o own_o side_n upon_o the_o cross_n as_o eve_n our_o first_o father_n adam_n spouse_n be_v make_v of_o his_o rib_n and_o this_o long_a since_o he_o promise_v to_o do_v by_o the_o prophet_n osee_n in_o these_o word_n i_o will_v espouse_v thou_o unto_o i_o for_o ever_o 19_o osee_n 2._o vers_fw-la 19_o and_o i_o will_v espouse_v thou_o unto_o i_o in_o justice_n and_o judgement_n and_o mercy_n and_o miseration_n he_o also_o redeem_v purchase_v and_o wash_v she_o with_o his_o own_o most_o precious_a blood_n and_o make_v she_o his_o spiritual_a body_n wherefore_o he_o be_v present_a with_o she_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n all_o day_n ult._n math._n 28._o vers_fw-la ult._n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v but_o he_o love_v cherish_v and_o govern_v she_o as_o his_o spouse_n and_o body_n out_o of_o which_o favour_n and_o prerogative_n i_o may_v very_o well_o infer_v that_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o and_o hate_v all_o falsehood_n preserve_v she_o from_o error_n this_o also_o be_v a_o dowry_n and_o privilege_n so_o necessary_a to_o her_o dignity_n these_o consideration_n move_v s._n cyprian_n to_o discourse_v after_o this_o sort_n of_o this_o matter_n ecclesiae_fw-la cipr._n li._n de_fw-fr unitat_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n say_v he_o can_v be_v defile_v with_o adultery_n she_o be_v incorrupt_a pure_a and_o chaste_a she_o know_v one_o only_a house_n she_o keep_v with_o a_o chaste_a shamefastness_n the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o chamber_n thus_o s._n cyprian_n to_o the_o same_o allude_v these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o true_a mother_n 22._o aug._n tom_n 6._o conc_fw-fr ad_fw-la cath_z c._n 22._o a_o mother_n pious_a and_o chaste_a adorn_v inward_o with_o the_o dignity_n of_o her_o husband_n not_o outward_o shameful_o and_o dishonest_o paint_v deceitful_o with_o a_o deceive_a lie_n the_o promise_n of_o christ_n unto_o his_o church_n of_o not_o err_v and_o the_o prerogative_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o the_o same_o yield_v we_o a_o three_o argument_n for_o listen_v a_o little_a what_o a_o notable_a and_o worthy_a promise_n he_o have_v make_v to_o we_o that_o his_o church_n build_v upon_o s._n peter_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v his_o whole_a church_n unite_v to_o the_o supreme_a vicar_n and_o chief_a head_n of_o the_o same_o under_o himself_o shall_v not_o fail_v or_o err_v these_o be_v the_o word_n which_o he_o utter_v to_o the_o say_a apostle_n 18._o math._n 16._o vers_fw-la 18._o thou_o be_v peter_n or_o a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o what_o can_v he_o have_v say_v more_o for_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o her_o infallible_a judgement_n for_o be_v it_o not_o
evident_a that_o hell_n gate_n do_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n if_o either_o she_o decay_n or_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n who_o then_o can_v say_v that_o either_o the_o have_v perish_v or_o err_v except_o he_o will_v accuse_v christ_n of_o falsehood_n in_o not_o perform_v his_o promise_n and_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n very_o ancorato_n very_o chrisost_n hom_n 4._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n vidi_fw-la dominum_fw-la epiph._n in_o ancorato_n s._n john_n chrisostome_n affirm_v that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v fail_v before_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n s._n epiphanius_n also_o allude_v to_o this_o promise_n tell_v we_o that_o our_o lord_n appoint_v peter_n the_o first_o or_o chief_a apostle_n a_o firm_a rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v build_v and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n say_v he_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o for_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v heretic_n and_o arch-heretike_n etc._n etc._n the_o like_a sentence_n i_o can_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o unto_o this_o testimony_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o can_v likewise_o add_v that_o he_o have_v warrant_v the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o in_o he_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v ministerial_a head_n of_o christ_n church_n on_o earth_n 31._o luc._n 22._o vers_fw-la 31._o that_o it_o shall_v not_o fail_v and_o consequent_o that_o the_o body_n rule_v by_o the_o head_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o prerogative_n but_o of_o this_o hereafter_o moreover_o our_o saviour_n make_v his_o church_n the_o supreme_a judge_n on_o earth_n of_o all_o controversy_n touch_v matter_n of_o religion_n for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o from_o her_o judgement_n he_o grant_v no_o appeal_n and_o that_o he_o will_v have_v her_o definitive_a sentence_n so_o firm_a and_o inviolable_a among_o christian_n that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v he_o account_v one_o of_o that_o number_n who_o shall_v prevaricate_v or_o despise_v the_o same_o this_o be_v signify_v unto_o we_o in_o these_o his_o word_n 17._o math._n 18._o vers_fw-la 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a and_o the_o publican_n in_o which_o sentence_n he_o bid_v we_o esteem_v no_o more_o of_o our_o brother_n or_o neighbour_n that_o contemn_v or_o disobey_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n then_o of_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n of_o which_o i_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n in_o her_o censure_n can_v err_v for_o if_o this_o may_v be_v than_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o condemn_v who_o she_o condemn_v or_o to_o condemn_v he_o that_o will_v not_o listen_v and_o obey_v her_o counsel_n and_o precept_n may_v together_o with_o the_o church_n condemn_v a_o man_n without_o just_a cause_n and_o that_o according_a to_o christ_n commandment_n it_o appear_v likewise_o out_o of_o the_o say_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n obey_v wherefore_o he_o ought_v in_o reason_n to_o provide_v that_o the_o say_a sentence_n be_v not_o erroneous_a but_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o also_o for_o the_o constant_a verity_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n it_o make_v first_o that_o diverse_a falshoode_n which_o before_o her_o say_a censure_n may_v in_o time_n past_a have_v be_v believe_v and_o defend_v yea_o be_v defend_v &_o believe_v by_o the_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n without_o incur_v the_o crime_n of_o heresy_n afterwards_o can_v not_o be_v so_o believe_v and_o defend_v as_o i_o can_v exemplify_v in_o the_o milinary_a heresy_n the_o opinion_n of_o such_o as_o hold_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n of_o other_o that_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o some_o canonical_a book_n and_o such_o like_a second_o it_o make_v also_o for_o these_o her_o prerogative_n that_o all_o such_o as_o have_v obstinate_o maintain_v any_o opinion_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n for_o heresy_n and_o consequent_o have_v disobey_v her_o authority_n &_o decree_n and_o be_v by_o she_o adjudge_v heretic_n have_v ever_o by_o all_o antiquity_n be_v so_o account_v 16._o august_n in_o enchirid._n ad_fw-la laurent_n cap._n 5._o tertul._n de_fw-fr pudicitia_fw-la item_n li._n the_o prescript_n math._n 5._o v._n 13.15_o luc._n 10._o vers_fw-la 16._o and_o therefore_o have_v not_o be_v number_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n among_o christian_n who_o opinion_n notwithstanding_o if_o we_o reject_v her_o infallible_a judgement_n by_o which_o they_o be_v condemn_v and_o make_v it_o subject_a to_o error_n may_v be_v reviue_v and_o call_v again_o in_o question_n either_o as_o wrongful_o and_o injust_o censure_v or_o at_o the_o least_o as_o condemn_v by_o a_o judge_n who_o judgement_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n and_o falsehood_n the_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n grant_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n confirm_v the_o same_o for_o they_o be_v by_o he_o call_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v they_o receive_v from_o he_o this_o commission_n and_o approbation_n of_o their_o doctrine_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o which_o word_n argue_v a_o infallible_a truth_n although_o not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o every_o particular_a bishop_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o in_o they_o altogether_o when_o they_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o council_n or_o in_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o they_o although_o divide_v &_o separate_v in_o place_n for_o in_o these_o like_v as_o in_o christ_n apostle_n and_o disciple_n as_o i_o have_v above_o declare_v the_o word_n allege_v must_v be_v verify_v which_o can_v be_v do_v if_o they_o all_o in_o every_o sense_n may_v err_v for_o how_o can_v they_o then_o true_o be_v term_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o that_o hear_v they_o hear_v christ_n but_o if_o we_o have_v no_o other_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o this_o matter_n five_o or_o six_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n use_v by_o he_o to_o timothy_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n etc._n 1._o tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o etc._n etc._n be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v our_o understanding_n and_o make_v we_o yield_v to_o this_o truth_n for_o in_o his_o say_a epistle_n he_o term_v the_o church_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n these_o thing_n i_o write_v to_o thou_o say_v he_o hope_v that_o i_o shall_v come_v to_o thou_o quick_o but_o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o converse_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n what_o can_v he_o have_v say_v more_o evident_a for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o very_a foundation_n and_o establishment_n of_o all_o verity_n upon_o which_o as_o upon_o a_o sure_a foundation_n and_o a_o inviolable_a pillar_n a_o man_n may_v secure_o build_v the_o edifice_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o religion_n who_o then_o will_v say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o error_n these_o consideration_n move_v s._n augustine_n cresconium_fw-la aug._n lib._n 1._o cont_n cresconium_fw-la dispute_v against_o cresconius_n concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n to_o use_v this_o discourse_n these_o be_v his_o word_n although_o of_o this_o that_o the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n be_v true_a baptism_n there_o be_v no_o certain_a example_n bring_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n yet_o also_o in_o this_o we_o keep_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o say_a scripture_n when_o as_o we_o do_v that_o which_o now_o have_v please_v the_o whole_a church_n which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o do_v commend_v that_o because_o the_o scripture_n can_v deceive_v whosoever_o do_v fear_n lest_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n may_v ask_v counsel_n touch_v it_o of_o the_o church_n who_o without_o any_o doubt_n the_o scripture_n itself_o do_v show_v hitherto_o s._n augustine_n out_o of_o which_o discourse_n of_o he_o we_o may_v gather_v this_o notable_a rule_n that_o in_o all_o thing_n doubtful_a and_o in_o all_o obscure_a question_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n we_o ought_v to_o inquire_v and_o search_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o embrace_v the_o same_o seek_v no_o further_a warrant_n of_o security_n because_o the_o scripture_n demonstrate_v she_o and_o manifest_o declare_v that_o
her_o doctrine_n be_v true_a and_o may_v secure_o be_v follow_v without_o any_o danger_n of_o error_n unto_o these_o argument_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reason_n itself_o assent_v for_o see_v that_o for_o diverse_a respect_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o christ_n our_o lord_n shall_v not_o always_o converse_v on_o earth_n among_o we_o and_o in_o his_o own_o person_n manage_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v leave_v among_o christian_n some_o certain_a rule_n &_o guide_v whereby_o they_o may_v direct_v their_o faith_n and_o some_o judge_n for_o the_o decide_n of_o daily_a controversy_n which_o may_v arise_v touch_v matter_n of_o religion_n who_o judgement_n they_o may_v secure_o follow_v without_o all_o danger_n of_o be_v deceive_v neither_o can_v we_o imagine_v that_o god_n infinite_a wisdom_n foresee_v all_o thing_n and_o time_n to_o come_v or_o his_o unspeakable_a goodness_n and_o love_n to_o his_o church_n can_v order_v thing_n otherwise_o and_o this_o infallible_a guide_n and_o supreme_a judge_n be_v the_o church_n include_v the_o pope_n and_o other_o her_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n it_o be_v also_o needful_a see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o endure_v for_o ever_o i_o mean_v on_o earth_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o be_v to_o all_o person_n a_o perfect_a guide_n in_o all_o age_n to_o salvation_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v preserve_v from_o false_a doctrine_n and_o ruin_n otherwise_o it_o can_v not_o at_o all_o time_n have_v perform_v these_o office_n our_o adversary_n will_v answer_v that_o the_o church_n through_o false_a doctrine_n and_o superstition_n have_v already_o perish_v and_o not_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n for_o diverse_a hundred_o of_o year_n but_o this_o i_o shall_v refute_v at_o large_a 5._o large_a cap._n 5._o in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o definition_n and_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o this_o present_a unto_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v in_o this_o chapter_n concern_v the_o continual_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n and_o other_o argument_n prove_v that_o she_o can_v err_v i_o add_v only_o that_o according_a to_o the_o censure_n of_o s._n augustine_n 8._o augustine_n aug._n l._n de_fw-fr unita_fw-la eccles_n c._n 6._o 7_o 12._o &_o 13._o see_v he_o also_o li._n 20._o the_o civet_n c._n 8._o &_o in_o psal_n 85._o &_o de_fw-la utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 8._o whosoever_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v overthrow_v do_v rob_v christ_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o inheritance_n buy_v with_o his_o most_o precious_a blood_n yea_o s._n hierome_n go_v further_a and_o aver_v that_o he_o that_o so_o say_v do_v make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n and_o a_o poor_a miserable_a christ_n 6._o hier._n count_v lucifer_n cap._n 6._o the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o assertion_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n bereave_v the_o whole_a incarnation_n life_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o their_o effect_n and_o end_n which_o be_v principal_o to_o find_v a_o church_n and_o kingdom_n in_o this_o world_n which_o shall_v endure_v until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o direct_a man_n in_o all_o truth_n to_o salvation_n wherefore_o whosoever_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v perish_v take_v away_o this_o effect_n and_o prerogative_n from_o his_o incarnation_n life_n and_o passion_n and_o avouch_v that_o at_o sometime_o man_n have_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o attain_v to_o everlasting_a bliss_n which_o be_v also_o repugnant_a to_o the_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n he_o also_o make_v god_n subject_a to_o the_o devil_n in_o make_v the_o devil_n strong_a than_o christ_n and_o affirm_v he_o to_o have_v overthrow_v christ_n church_n &_o kingdom_n which_o our_o lord_n promise_v shall_v never_o be_v conquer_v as_o i_o have_v above_o declare_v i_o can_v add_v a_o other_o reason_n convince_a the_o church_n not_o to_o have_v err_v take_v out_o of_o tertullian_n 28._o tertul._n lib._n the_o praescr_n cap._n 28._o who_o prove_v it_o because_o error_n common_o bring_v forth_o division_n for_o it_o be_v a_o very_a strange_a matter_n that_o diverse_a nation_n far_o distant_a from_o one_o a_o other_o err_v from_o the_o truth_n shall_v all_o fall_v into_o the_o self_n same_o error_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n in_o all_o place_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o it_o be_v like_a that_o it_o do_v proceed_v of_o tradition_n not_o of_o error_n but_o this_o matter_n be_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v i_o will_v therefore_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o error_n touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o consequent_o that_o every_o man_n may_v secure_o follow_v concern_v such_o matter_n her_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n and_o this_o be_v that_o high_a beat_a and_o plain_a way_n to_o salvation_n which_o be_v long_o since_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaias_n who_o prophesy_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n use_v these_o word_n 8._o isa_n 35._o vers_fw-la 8._o and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o path_n and_o way_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o holy_a way_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o direct_a that_o fool_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o err_v therein_o for_o no_o such_o way_n can_v be_v show_v if_o this_o be_v deny_v hence_o s._n hierome_n tell_v we_o 6._o hieron_n in_o dialog_n count_v lucifer_n cap._n 6._o that_o we_o ought_v to_o remain_v in_o that_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n continue_v till_o this_o day_n this_o also_o be_v that_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o as_o we_o profess_v ourselves_o to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o in_o these_o word_n we_o do_v not_o only_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n but_o also_o affirm_v that_o we_o believe_v hear_v and_o obey_v the_o same_o wherefore_o in_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n touch_v religion_n let_v we_o listen_v and_o give_v ear_n to_o this_o our_o holy_a mother_n and_o obey_v her_o sentence_n although_o it_o seem_v never_o so_o repugnant_a to_o our_o sense_n and_o reason_n for_o she_o be_v the_o rock_n ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n let_v we_o believe_v she_o and_o ever_o remain_v in_o her_o sacred_a bosom_n and_o although_o we_o receive_v our_o faith_n and_o be_v instruct_v in_o religion_n by_o some_o particular_a man_n yet_o let_v we_o not_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o universal_a church_n for_o they_o who_o instruct_v we_o and_o deliver_v our_o faith_n unto_o we_o do_v this_o as_o the_o officer_n and_o member_n of_o this_o church_n and_o by_o her_o order_n and_o appointment_n neither_o do_v they_o deliver_v the_o say_a doctrine_n unto_o we_o as_o their_o own_o but_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o such_o we_o receive_v it_o and_o have_v sufficient_a motive_n to_o persuade_v we_o that_o this_o be_v true_a wherefore_o like_v as_o the_o action_n of_o a_o member_n of_o a_o man_n body_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o whole_a for_o although_o the_o hand_n strike_v yet_o man_n be_v say_v to_o strike_v etc._n etc._n so_o although_o we_o be_v instruct_v &_o teach_v by_o some_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o say_a catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n these_o consideration_n be_v so_o forcible_a even_o in_o luther_n understanding_n for_o a_o long_a time_n after_o his_o fall_n from_o we_o that_o he_o find_v his_o conscience_n often_o trouble_v for_o his_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n in_o one_o place_n thus_o he_o write_v arbit_fw-la write_v luther_n tom_n 2._o l._n de_fw-fr seru_fw-fr arbit_fw-la during_o more_o than_o ten_o year_n i_o be_v so_o move_v by_o authority_n conscience_n multitude_n of_o martyr_n of_o bishop_n of_o pope_n of_o counsel_n of_o university_n that_o it_o be_v incredible_a that_o this_o troy_n remain_v so_o long_o in_o so_o many_o conflict_n invincible_a can_v never_o be_v conquer_v and_o in_o another_o place_n hominis_fw-la place_n luther_n tom_n 1._o in_o propos_fw-fr suis_fw-fr de_fw-fr viribus_fw-la hominis_fw-la when_o i_o have_v say_v he_o overcome_v all_o argument_n by_o the_o scripture_n this_o one_o that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v at_o length_n with_o most_o great_a difficulty_n and_o perplexity_n or_o anguish_n by_o christ_n assistance_n i_o hardly_o overcome_v thus_o luther_n i_o add_v also_o that_o our_o other_o our_o see_v hooker_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o eccl._n policy_n §._o 2_o 7._o 9_o bel_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 200._o whitgift_n &_o other_o english_a protestant_n themselves_o dispute_v against_o the_o puritan_n be_v
prerogative_n upon_o his_o spiritual_a body_n and_o spouse_n but_o perhaps_o these_o prerogative_n redound_v great_o to_o the_o good_a and_o benefit_n of_o the_o member_n and_o child_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o this_o can_v be_v aver_v true_a for_o what_o be_v poor_a christian_n the_o near_o for_o it_o how_o can_v such_o a_o church_n be_v the_o director_n of_o their_o faith_n how_o shall_v they_o know_v what_o faith_n be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o what_o part_n teach_v true_a doctrine_n and_o when_o and_o which_o err_v in_o subsequent_a age_n how_o shall_v we_o understand_v her_o judicial_a sentence_n when_o controversy_n arise_v and_o be_v to_o be_v decide_v sure_o they_o that_o be_v past_a and_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n can_v perform_v these_o thing_n by_o no_o other_o mean_n but_o by_o their_o write_n leave_v behind_o they_o wherefore_o we_o can_v take_v no_o other_o direction_n and_o receive_v no_o other_o judicial_a sentence_n from_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o acception_n but_o by_o such_o monument_n and_o book_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n and_o other_o our_o predecessor_n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o reduce_v all_o to_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o work_n of_o antiquity_n which_o as_o i_o will_v prove_v hereafter_o set_v aside_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n yield_v we_o no_o certain_a and_o divine_a argument_n and_o to_o give_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o church_n itself_o contrary_a to_o all_o the_o argument_n before_o make_v for_o her_o infallible_a authority_n final_o some_o of_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n before_o aleadge_v be_v express_o speak_v of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o that_o tell_v the_o church_n if_o he_o shall_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o he_o to_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_a or_o publican_n etc._n etc._n section_n the_o sixth_o that_o the_o same_o testimony_n and_o proof_n convince_v a_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v every_o article_n of_o faith_n not_o only_o concern_v certain_a of_o the_o principal_n second_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n with_o the_o reason_n bring_v in_o this_o chapter_n prove_v the_o judgement_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a and_o infallible_a truth_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v even_o as_o easy_o show_v for_o be_v not_o the_o word_n general_a be_v it_o not_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v the_o church_n all_o truth_n and_o that_o she_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n &_o c._n and_o how_o can_v these_o promise_n be_v verify_v if_o in_o some_o thing_n she_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n 4._o field_n book_n 4._o chap._n 4._o some_o say_v these_o last_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o ephesian_n but_o first_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o god_n bestow_v such_o a_o extraordinary_a privilege_n upon_o that_o church_n as_o to_o make_v it_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n second_o the_o apostle_n call_v that_o church_n unto_o which_o he_o here_o give_v these_o prerogative_n the_o house_n of_o god_n by_o which_o word_n 6._o word_n cipr._n l._n 1._o epist_n 6._o s._n cyprian_n 2._o cyprian_n aug._n l._n 7._o de_fw-la baptis_fw-la count_v donat._n ca._n 49._o 50._o 51._o item_n in_o psalm_n 25._o enarrat_fw-la 2._o s._n augustine_n and_o all_o the_o father_n common_o understand_v the_o whole_a militant_a church_n yea_o s._n augustine_n allude_v to_o this_o sentence_n and_o use_v the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o whole_a church_n 20._o church_n 2._o tim._n 2._o vers_fw-la 20._o columnam_fw-la &_o firmamentum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n be_v call_v a_o great_a house_n as_o 11._o as_o field_n book_n 1._o chap._n 11._o field_n himself_o confess_v and_o because_o every_o particular_a diocese_n be_v a_o part_n of_o this_o church_n the_o apostle_n may_v very_o well_o use_v this_o kind_n of_o speech_n unto_o timothy_n i_o write_v to_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o thou_o ought_v to_o converse_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n although_o the_o say_v timothy_n be_v bishop_n only_o of_o ephesus_n moreover_o be_v we_o not_o absolute_o under_o peril_n of_o be_v account_v heathen_n and_o publican_n bind_v to_o obey_v the_o church_n and_o what_o reason_n have_v our_o lord_n so_o to_o bind_v we_o if_o in_o some_o thing_n her_o judgement_n may_v be_v erroneous_a for_o how_o shall_v we_o discern_v which_o those_o article_n be_v in_o which_o she_o can_v err_v and_o in_o which_o she_o may_v err_v further_o what_o profit_n if_o this_o be_v so_o shall_v we_o receive_v from_o she_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o end_v of_o all_o controversy_n very_o this_o assertion_n be_v even_o as_o prejuditial_a to_o the_o good_a of_o unity_n as_o that_o which_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v no_o warrant_n of_o truth_n at_o al._n for_o what_o dissension_n and_o division_n will_v arise_v of_o this_o may_v not_o every_o man_n contradict_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n in_o any_o matter_n whatsoever_o and_o affirm_v his_o contradiction_n to_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o small_a moment_n who_o shall_v judge_v which_o matter_n be_v of_o great_a and_o which_o of_o small_a importance_n for_o example_n diverse_a sectary_n tell_v we_o etc._n see_v covel_n in_o defence_n of_o hooker_n artic_a 11._o fox_n pag._n 942._o etc._n etc._n that_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n whether_o he_o be_v there_o real_o and_o substantial_o by_o transubstantiation_n as_o the_o catholic_n affirm_v or_o together_o with_o bread_n as_o the_o lutheran_n say_v or_o only_o figurative_o as_o be_v affirm_v by_o the_o sacramentary_n be_v a_o question_n of_o small_a importance_n not_o any_o essential_a point_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o christian_a religion_n but_o how_o will_v these_o man_n refute_v castalio_n who_o add_v if_o beza_n say_v true_a that_o the_o controversy_n touch_v the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o estate_n and_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o how_o he_o be_v one_o with_o his_o father_n be_v concern_v no_o essential_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n certain_o they_o can_v well_o overthrow_v his_o opinion_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v in_o old_a time_n and_o be_v at_o this_o present_a affirm_v by_o some_o 33._o see_v theodoretus_n lib_n 2._o hiss_v cap._n 18._o 19_o 21._o trip._n hist_o lib._n 5._o cap._n 21._o &_o 33._o that_o so_o that_o christ_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v god_n it_o skill_v not_o whether_o he_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v equal_a or_o not_o equal_a consubstantial_a or_o not_o consubstantial_a to_o his_o father_n wherefore_o this_o assertion_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n may_v in_o some_o point_n be_v deny_v first_o open_v the_o gap_n to_o all_o dissension_n then_o to_o all_o impiety_n and_o overthrow_n of_o christianity_n which_o thing_n be_v sufficient_a to_o persuade_v every_o christian_n to_o abhor_v and_o detest_v it_o section_n the_o seven_o that_o to_o salvation_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n and_o every_o article_n thereof_o concern_v the_o three_o point_n which_o i_o intend_v to_o prove_v i_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v and_o hold_v either_o express_o or_o virtual_o every_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o church_n to_o her_o child_n to_o be_v believe_v i_o add_v those_o word_n express_o or_o virtual_o because_o i_o say_v not_o that_o every_o man_n be_v bind_v express_o to_o know_v all_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o it_o be_v hold_v by_o we_o sufficient_a if_o the_o rude_a sort_n know_v express_o certain_a of_o the_o principal_a as_o be_v they_o that_o concern_v the_o trinity_n and_o the_o incarnation_n passion_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n if_o they_o virtual_o believe_v all_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v if_o they_o believe_v concern_v all_o such_o point_n as_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v express_o to_o know_v whatsoever_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o be_v of_o contrary_a belief_n in_o no_o one_o point_n propound_v unto_o they_o and_o know_v to_o be_v propound_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n we_o differ_v therefore_o from_o our_o adversary_n in_o this_o that_o some_o of_o they_o hold_v a_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v any_o such_o article_n not_o necessary_o to_o be_v know_v by_o all_o other_o say_v a_o man_n may_v err_v
his_o holy_a spirit_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o whosoever_o be_v infect_v with_o any_o one_o such_o heresy_n be_v void_a of_o all_o spiritual_a life_n and_o in_o state_n of_o damnation_n and_o can_v have_v no_o more_o life_n than_o a_o man_n arm_n cut_v off_o from_o his_o body_n or_o a_o bough_n cut_v from_o a_o tree_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n i_o shall_v entreat_v more_o at_o large_a 4._o chap._n 1._o sect._n 4._o in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o definition_n and_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n where_o i_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v link_v together_o by_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o for_o this_o present_a this_o shall_v suffice_v and_o less_o i_o think_v will_v have_v satisfy_v any_o reasonable_a man_n for_o see_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a rule_n of_o belief_n 4._o ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 4._o and_o one_o faith_n according_a as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n among_o christian_n and_o this_o faith_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o no_o wiseman_n will_v prescribe_v himself_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o his_o own_o erroneous_a fancy_n and_o neglect_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n who_o truth_n itself_o have_v warrant_v that_o she_o shall_v not_o err_v from_o truth_n chapter_n 7._o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o first_o particular_a ground_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n section_n the_o first_o how_o the_o scripture_n be_v know_v to_o be_v canonical_a the_o supreme_a authority_n and_o infallible_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o establish_v and_o prove_v it_o may_v well_o in_o this_o place_n be_v demand_v what_o particular_a ground_n decree_n or_o principle_n the_o church_n do_v deliver_v unto_o we_o or_o we_o find_v in_o the_o church_n whereupon_o we_o may_v secure_o build_v our_o faith_n for_o the_o resolution_n of_o this_o question_n i_o have_v affirm_v in_o the_o title_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o the_o first_o such_o particular_a ground_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o although_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o diverse_a book_n of_o the_o say_v holy_a scripture_n for_o most_o of_o they_o by_o we_o all_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v canonical_a yet_o much_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o we_o concern_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o know_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o every_o parcel_n thereof_o to_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o divine_a volume_n wherefore_o these_o point_n be_v brief_o to_o be_v handle_v and_o discuss_v how_o then_o do_v we_o know_v that_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v canonical_a how_o can_v we_o certain_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n write_v the_o new_a what_o proof_n likewise_o have_v we_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o no_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v be_v in_o time_n past_o corrupt_a or_o deprave_a i_o answer_v in_o few_o word_n that_o all_o this_o be_v infallible_o know_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o have_v adjudge_v all_o such_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a and_o as_o canonical_a receive_v they_o and_o deliver_v they_o to_o her_o child_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o scripture_n before_o the_o definition_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a and_o contain_v the_o certain_a and_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n but_o this_o only_o i_o say_v that_o this_o truth_n and_o authority_n be_v first_o infallible_o know_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n who_o adjudge_v and_o censure_v they_o to_o be_v as_o they_o be_v and_o as_o such_o command_v all_o christian_n to_o esteem_v and_o reverence_v they_o neither_o be_v this_o any_o way_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o this_o notwithstanding_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o say_a scripture_n be_v of_o far_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o church_n or_o her_o definition_n be_v which_o be_v manifest_a because_o although_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assist_v and_o direct_v both_o the_o writer_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o church_n yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o have_v assist_v and_o direct_v the_o first_o after_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a manner_n than_o he_o do_v the_o second_o because_o his_o assistance_n and_o direction_n in_o pen_v those_o sacred_a book_n be_v such_o that_o every_o sentence_n in_o they_o contain_v be_v of_o most_o certain_a verity_n but_o his_o assistance_n unto_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o a_o general_a council_n or_o otherwise_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n make_v only_o that_o which_o the_o say_a council_n or_o bishop_n intend_v to_o define_v of_o such_o a_o infallible_a truth_n wherefore_o then_o do_v we_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n sure_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n then_o because_o the_o church_n be_v better_a know_v unto_o we_o then_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o church_n have_v always_o be_v as_o i_o will_v prove_v hereafter_o most_o visible_a and_o apparent_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n every_o man_n also_o before_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v &_o before_o that_o it_o be_v general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n may_v have_v know_v the_o church_n for_o she_o be_v before_o any_o part_n of_o it_o be_v pen_v and_o consequent_o by_o her_o infallible_a judgement_n every_o one_o may_v with_o far_o more_o ease_n and_o certainty_n have_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o book_n then_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n or_o industry_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v although_o the_o church_n make_v not_o scripture_n yet_o of_o she_o we_o learn_v most_o certain_o which_o be_v scripture_n and_o this_o be_v no_o more_o disgrace_n unto_o scripture_n than_o it_o be_v unto_o christ_n that_o the_o apostle_n give_v testimony_n of_o he_o because_o they_o be_v better_o know_v than_o he_o i_o add_v also_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o who_o above_o all_o other_o reprehend_v this_o our_o assertion_n take_v upon_o himself_o as_o great_a authority_n over_o scripture_n as_o we_o give_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n 1_o see_v part_n second_o chap._n 5._o sect._n 1_o for_o every_o new_a sectary_n out_o of_o his_o own_o fancy_n judge_v this_o to_o be_v scripture_n that_o to_o be_v none_o etc._n etc._n which_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o every_o man_n judgement_n far_o more_o absurd_a this_o assertion_n be_v thus_o explicate_v let_v we_o now_o brief_o prove_v the_o same_o and_o first_o because_o we_o can_v assign_v no_o other_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o may_v say_v that_o we_o certain_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o concern_v the_o old_a testament_n although_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o be_v first_o partly_o approve_v by_o miracle_n partly_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o prophet_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n yet_o how_o do_v we_o now_o infallible_o know_v that_o it_o be_v so_o approve_v and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o now_o that_o be_v then_o approve_v but_o by_o the_o relation_n tradition_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o demand_v who_o have_v receive_v it_o into_o the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n what_o miracle_n have_v be_v wrought_v to_o prove_v it_o canonical_a who_o do_v assure_v we_o that_o it_o be_v pen_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o since_o their_o day_n it_o have_v not_o be_v corrupt_v very_o the_o church_n only_o resolve_v we_o of_o all_o these_o question_n and_o tell_v we_o with_o assurance_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o say_v new_a testament_n be_v write_v by_o the_o say_v sacred_a author_n inspire_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o ever_o since_o their_o day_n it_o have_v be_v preserve_v in_o her_o sacred_a bosom_n without_o corruption_n and_o no_o other_o answer_n have_v any_o probability_n of_o truth_n and_o sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v a_o reasonable_a man_n understanding_n can_v be_v make_v this_o may_v also_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o continual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o it_o be_v she_o do_v that_o the_o four_o gospel_n of_o s._n mathewe_n mark_v luke_n and_o john_n 2._o see_v part_n 2_o chap._n 5._o sect._n 2._o be_v receive_v and_o the_o gospel_n call_v of_o nicodemus_n with_o other_o reject_v she_o have_v likewise_o now_o receive_v as_o canonical_a diverse_a book_n in_o time_n pass_v of_o
in_o li._n de_fw-fr scriptor_n eccl._n in_o joan._n s._n hierome_n testify_v and_o that_o all_o be_v not_o by_o he_o record_v it_o be_v manifest_a because_o those_o speech_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v with_o his_o apostle_n during_o the_o forty_o day_n between_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n be_v almost_o altogether_o omit_v neither_o do_v he_o write_v this_o gospel_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n but_o many_o year_n after_o to_o wit_n about_o threescore_o and_o six_o year_n after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n and_o like_v as_o s._n john_n so_o do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n leave_v unto_o we_o such_o parcel_n of_o scripture_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o some_o extraordinary_a occasion_n move_v they_o thereunto_o as_o i_o can_v easy_o declare_v and_o prove_v 58._o see_n euse_n hist_o li._n 3._o chrisost_n hom_n 1._o in_o mat._n epipha_n haeres_fw-la 51._o baronius_n to_o 1._o au_o 45._o et_fw-la 58._o out_o of_o eusebius_n saint_n hierome_n and_o other_o i_o know_v that_o first_o that_o field_n book_n 4._o cap._n 20._o §_o for_o first_o field_n make_v show_v as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a matter_n that_o the_o evangelist_n in_o their_o gospel_n s._n luke_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o s._n john_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n mean_v to_o deliver_v a_o perfect_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o direction_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o what_o reason_n he_o bring_v for_o it_o of_o any_o moment_n i_o can_v see_v and_o beside_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o one_o of_o they_o intend_v to_o set_v down_o all_o because_o no_o one_o of_o they_o have_v so_o do_v wherefore_o if_o they_o have_v set_v down_o all_o as_o he_o affirm_v either_o it_o have_v proceed_v from_o some_o common_a deliberation_n or_o consultation_n have_v among_o themselves_o in_o which_o they_o determine_v what_o every_o one_o shall_v rehearse_v or_o else_o from_o the_o disposition_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o inspire_v they_o to_o write_v not_o the_o first_o because_o no_o man_n ever_o make_v mention_n of_o such_o a_o deliberation_n or_o consultation_n and_o moreover_o they_o write_v upon_o diverse_a occasion_n in_o diverse_a country_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n as_o ecclesiastical_a history_n testify_v not_o the_o second_o because_o field_n himself_o grant_v that_o something_o be_v want_v in_o these_o book_n which_o the_o church_n believe_v which_o will_v not_o have_v be_v if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v intend_v that_o all_o shall_v have_v be_v set_v down_o for_o he_o add_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v occasionallie_o write_v yet_o so_o say_v he_o as_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n all_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o church_n believe_v not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o other_o part_n scripture_n purpose_o write_v be_v most_o clear_o and_o at_o large_a deliver_v in_o these_o epistle_n mark_v well_o gentle_a reader_n this_o doctrine_n he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n in_o the_o gospel_n act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n mean_v to_o deliver_v a_o perfect_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n &_o direction_n of_o christian_a faith_n now_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o church_n believe_v some_o thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o apostolical_a epistle_n not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n purposed_o write_v of_o which_o i_o infer_v both_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v not_o that_o the_o penner_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o apocalypse_n shall_v deliver_v a_o perfect_a sum_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o also_o that_o he_o think_v the_o writer_n of_o these_o book_n to_o have_v miss_v of_o their_o intend_a purpose_n very_o this_o last_o point_n seem_v to_o i_o no_o very_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o beside_o how_o will_v m._n field_n prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o epistle_n supply_v all_o this_o want_n especial_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n in_o the_o other_o book_n although_o intend_v to_o write_v all_o yet_o in_o his_o opinion_n omit_v something_o and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n intend_v no_o such_o matter_n but_o write_v they_o as_o he_o say_v occasional_o wherefore_o there_o be_v far_o great_a likelihood_n that_o these_o omit_v something_o than_o they_o further_o one_o apostolical_a epistle_n at_o the_o least_o to_o the_o laodician_n have_v perish_v cor._n coloss_n 4.16_o see_v 1._o cor._n 5_o 9_o chrisost_n hom_n 9_o in_o math._n et_fw-fr homil_n 7._o in_o 1._o cor._n of_o which_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o who_o can_v absolute_o say_v that_o nothing_o necessary_a be_v contain_v in_o it_o which_o be_v not_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n final_o field_n himself_o confess_v some_o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o i_o will_v declare_v in_o the_o next_o section_n what_o then_o do_v the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n express_o set_v down_o in_o those_o their_o monument_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n a_o part_n only_o without_o all_o doubt_n of_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o christian_a belief_n in_o which_o part_n they_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v the_o supreme_a and_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o who_o the_o rest_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v and_o to_o who_o custody_n they_o commit_v their_o say_a monument_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a sum_n or_o depositum_fw-la have_v be_v keep_v and_o preserve_v in_o the_o church_n not_o all_o &_o only_o in_o express_v term_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o whole_a by_o tradition_n &_o a_o part_n of_o that_o whole_a also_o by_o writing_n another_o part_n by_o only_a tradition_n by_o which_o likewise_o the_o say_a scripture_n itself_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n and_o after_o this_o sort_n the_o whole_a corpse_n of_o christian_a religion_n without_o any_o alteration_n descend_v unto_o us._n this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v concern_v the_o true_a sense_n &_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 5._o chap._n 7._o sect_n 5._o for_o as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v interpret_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o that_o belief_n which_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n have_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n wherefore_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a direction_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n the_o perfect_a and_o full_a direction_n of_o the_o say_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n may_v have_v remain_v sound_a and_o entire_a by_o tradition_n although_o no_o such_o letter_n have_v be_v publish_v but_o let_v we_o confirm_v this_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n 4._o irenae_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o among_o the_o rest_n s_o irenaeus_n discourse_v thus_o what_o say_v he_o if_o neither_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v we_o scripture_n aught_o we_o not_o to_o follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o deliver_v unto_o those_o who_o they_o commit_v church_n unto_o which_o order_n many_o barbarous_a nation_n believe_v in_o christ_n assent_v without_o letter_n or_o ink_n that_o be_v without_o any_o write_a word_n of_o god_n have_v salvation_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o diligent_o keep_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n hitherto_o s._n irenaeus_n and_o note_v well_o that_o he_o affirm_v some_o to_o have_v be_v christian_n without_o any_o scripture_n guide_v only_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n he_o tell_v we_o moreover_o that_o by_o this_o order_n of_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n all_o heretic_n be_v convince_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o catholic_n shut_v up_o their_o ear_n assoon_o as_o they_o hear_v they_o utter_v any_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o say_a order_n final_o he_o add_v that_o all_o that_o be_v desirous_a to_o hear_v the_o truth_n may_v see_v in_o the_o church_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v manifest_a through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o we_o can_v number_v those_o say_v he_o who_o be_v institute_v bishop_n in_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n even_o unto_o we_o who_o teach_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o man_n heretic_n dream_v of_o thus_o far_o s._n irenaeus_n 21_o tertul._n de_fw-fr praescrip_n cap._n 19_o 20._o 21_o who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 205._o tertullian_n also_o affirm_v that_o by_o this_o rule_n of_o tradition_n or_o prescription_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n heretic_n be_v to_o be_v convince_v and_o hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o the_o apostle_n with_o
ground_n hence_o proceed_v in_o the_o three_o precedent_a chapter_n i_o have_v treat_v of_o three_o principal_a ground_n on_o which_o with_o all_o security_n we_o may_v build_v our_o faith_n and_o religion_n i_o will_v now_o add_v unto_o they_o certain_a other_o common_o by_o all_o catholic_n esteem_v also_o to_o be_v of_o infallible_a authority_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o assign_v the_o decree_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n millitant_a but_o for_o a_o full_a explication_n and_o plain_a proof_n of_o this_o ground_n i_o will_v divide_v this_o chapter_n into_o certain_a section_n section_n the_o first_o contain_v a_o brief_a explication_n or_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n because_v our_o belief_n concern_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v diverse_o slander_v by_o our_o adversary_n i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o brief_o to_o explicate_v what_o our_o doctrine_n be_v for_o true_a it_o be_v that_o our_o assertion_n be_v explicate_v to_o they_o that_o be_v misinform_v be_v half_o prove_v we_o hold_v therefore_o that_o the_o supreme_a power_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n even_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n receive_v of_o his_o father_n before_o his_o ascension_n over_o all_o his_o church_n of_o which_o be_v these_o his_o word_n 5.6_o mat._n 28._o verse_n 18._o ephes_n 1_o 22._o 1_o pet._n 5_o 4._o heb._n 5.6_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n be_v never_o resign_v or_o give_v by_o he_o to_o any_o mortal_a creature_n wherefore_o as_o yet_o he_o remain_v supreme_a head_n of_o his_o church_n prince_n of_o pastor_n and_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n nevertheless_o because_o he_o be_v to_o withdraw_v his_o visible_a corporal_a presence_n from_o the_o church_n millitant_a and_o therefore_o can_v not_o himself_o decree_n and_o give_v sentence_n or_o advise_v in_o matter_n doubtful_a like_v as_o king_n or_o prince_n not_o be_v resident_a in_o their_o dominion_n for_o the_o good_a and_o peaceable_a government_n of_o their_o subject_n appoint_v viceroy_n or_o vicegerent_n 12._o luke_n 19_o vers_fw-la 12._o so_o he_o depart_v from_o his_o church_n as_o the_o scripture_n say_v into_o a_o far_a country_n like_a as_o he_o appoint_v diverse_a vicar_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o he_o ordain_v one_o for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o wit_n s._n peter_n who_o immediate_o receive_v such_o jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n from_o he_o and_o therefore_o during_o his_o mortal_a life_n be_v his_o vicegerent_n on_o earth_n ministerial_a head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o chief_a governor_n pastor_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o same_o and_o hence_o proceed_v the_o first_o difference_n between_o christ_n and_o s._n peter_n touch_v the_o supremacy_n over_o the_o church_n for_o although_o they_o be_v both_o term_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o the_o last_o of_o they_o be_v subordinate_a &_o depend_v of_o the_o first_o and_o the_o first_o only_o be_v the_o supreme_a independent_a the_o last_o be_v the_o supreme_a visible_a ministerial_a &_o dependent_a head_n of_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o second_o be_v nothing_o prejudicial_a to_o that_o of_o the_o first_o for_o they_o may_v stand_v very_o well_o together_o see_v that_o the_o one_o be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o other_o neither_o do_v christ_n and_o his_o vicar_n proper_o make_v two_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o one_o like_v as_o a_o king_n and_o his_o viceroy_n make_v not_o proper_o two_o king_n but_o one_o for_o like_a as_o the_o king_n notwithstanding_o his_o viceroy_n be_v the_o one_o chief_a prince_n governor_n and_o head_n of_o his_o country_n so_o be_v christ_n the_o chief_a prelate_n and_o head_n of_o his_o church_n s._n peter_n be_v his_o vicar_n and_o vicegerent_n and_o so_o be_v at_o this_o present_a his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n it_o make_v that_o like_a as_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v head_n of_o the_o church_n so_o he_o be_v likewise_o call_v 16._o call_v apoc._n 17_o 14._o ca._n 19_o 16._o king_n lord_n 25._o lord_n 1._o pet._n 2_o 25._o bishop_n pastor_n 6._o pastor_n heb._n 3_o 1._o cap._n 5._o vers_fw-la 6._o apostle_n and_o priect_n wherefore_o like_v as_o this_o notwithstanding_o other_o may_v be_v king_n lord_n bishop_n pastor_n apostle_n and_o priest_n so_o another_o may_v be_v although_o not_o absolute_a yet_o subordinate_a and_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n after_o this_o sort_n also_o our_o saviour_n and_o s._n peter_n be_v both_o rock_n for_o although_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a rock_n and_o stone_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v yet_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o ministerial_a or_o secondary_a rock_n make_v by_o christ_n a_o rock_n and_o the_o principal_a stone_n next_o unto_o himself_o in_o the_o edifice_n of_o his_o church_n in_o which_o sense_n by_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n john_n suae_fw-la eph._n 2_o 20_o apoc._n 21._o verse_n 14._o basil_n hom_n de_fw-mi poeniten_fw-ge quae_fw-la est_fw-la ultima_fw-la inter_fw-la varias_fw-la homilias_fw-la math._n 5._o verse_n 14._o leo_fw-la serm_n 3._o amniversario_fw-la assumptionis_fw-la suae_fw-la although_o christ_n be_v the_o principal_a foundation_n of_o his_o church_n yet_o the_o apostle_n be_v likewise_o term_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o same_o this_o which_o i_o have_v say_v be_v most_o learned_o and_o evident_o declare_v by_o the_o holy_a father_n s._n basil_n in_o these_o his_o word_n although_o s._n peter_n say_v he_o be_v a_o rock_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o a_o rock_n as_o christ_n be_v for_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a immovable_a rock_n of_o himself_o peter_n be_v immovable_a through_o christ_n the_o rock_n for_o jesus_n do_v impart_v and_o communicate_v his_o dignity_n not_o void_v himself_o of_o they_o but_o hold_v they_o to_o himself_o he_o bestow_v they_o also_o upon_o other_o he_o be_v the_o light_n and_o yet_o you_o say_v he_o be_v the_o light_n he_o be_v the_o priest_n and_o yet_o he_o make_v priest_n he_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o yet_o be_v make_v a_o rock_n thus_o far_o s._n basil_n the_o like_a discourse_n we_o find_v in_o s._n leo_n for_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n thou_o be_v peter_n thus_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o say_a apostle_n whereas_o i_o be_o a_o inviolable_a rock_n i_o the_o corner_n stone_n who_o make_v both_o one_o i_o the_o foundation_n beside_o which_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v another_o yet_o thou_o also_o be_v a_o rock_n because_o by_o my_o power_n thou_o be_v make_v firm_a and_o strong_a to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o i_o by_o power_n be_v make_v common_a to_o thou_o by_o participation_n hitherto_o s._n leo._n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o difference_n between_o christ_n and_o s._n peter_n touch_v their_o superiority_n over_o the_o church_n an_o other_o difference_n between_o they_o be_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n be_v ever_o absolute_a of_o s._n peter_n limit_v for_o our_o saviour_n derive_v not_o unto_o he_o all_o his_o authority_n but_o a_o part_n only_o of_o the_o same_o hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o although_o christ_n institute_v sacrament_n forgive_v sin_n without_o the_o use_n of_o any_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n yet_o neither_o s._n peter_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n ever_o have_v any_o such_o power_n or_o authority_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o every_o man_n but_o christ_n have_v always_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v the_o mean_n by_o he_o institute_v and_o leave_v unto_o his_o church_n of_o which_o it_o appear_v how_o false_a their_o slander_n be_v who_o affirm_v the_o pope_n to_o pardon_v sin_n by_o his_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o by_o such_o indulgence_n no_o sin_n be_v forgive_v but_o man_n be_v only_o release_v of_o such_o temporal_a pain_n as_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o it_o be_v also_o confess_v by_o all_o catholic_n that_o no_o man_n as_o long_o as_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o mortal_a sin_n and_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n can_v receive_v any_o benefit_n from_o any_o such_o pardon_n a_o three_o difference_n be_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o life_n yea_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o can_v neither_o err_v in_o judgement_n nor_o in_o manner_n that_o be_v he_o can_v neither_o have_v any_o false_a or_o erroneous_a opinion_n in_o his_o understanding_n nor_o sin_n or_o err_v from_o reason_n and_o right_n in_o his_o will_n and_o action_n contrariwise_o his_o vicar_n although_o as_o i_o will_v prove_v
hereafter_o when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o supreme_a pastor_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o precept_n of_o manner_n which_o he_o prescribe_v to_o all_o faithful_a christian_n and_o concern_v thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o themselves_o good_a or_o evil_a for_o he_o can_v so_o command_v any_o vice_n or_o forbid_v any_o virtue_n yet_o as_o a_o private_a man_n or_o particular_a doctor_n he_o may_v err_v in_o his_o judgement_n or_o opinion_n he_o may_v also_o offend_v god_n most_o deep_o and_o be_v damn_v in_o hel-fire_n 48._o mat._n 24._o verse_n 48._o for_o if_o that_o servant_n who_o his_o lord_n have_v appoint_v over_o his_o family_n these_o be_v our_o saviour_n word_n shall_v say_v in_o his_o hart_n my_o lord_n be_v long_o a_o come_n and_o shall_v begin_v to_o strike_v his_o fellow_n servant_n and_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o drunkard_n the_o lord_n of_o that_o servant_n shall_v come_v in_o a_o day_n that_o he_o hope_v not_o and_o a_o hour_n that_o he_o know_v not_o and_o shall_v divide_v he_o and_o appoint_v his_o portion_n with_o the_o hypocrite_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_a and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n thus_o our_o saviour_n christ_n but_o although_o s._n peter_n in_o authority_n and_o diverse_a other_o prerogative_n be_v far_o inferior_a to_o christ_n even_o as_o man_n yet_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o although_o all_o the_o apostle_n receive_v of_o christ_n order_n and_o power_n to_o use_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o also_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o s._n peter_n only_o above_o the_o rest_n receive_v supreme_a power_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v give_v they_o with_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o subjection_n to_o peter_n they_o be_v also_o christ_n legate_n or_o ambassador_n send_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o they_o be_v only_a apostle_n be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o and_o no_o one_o superior_a over_o the_o other_o neither_o be_v they_o ordinary_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o of_o it_o s._n peter_n be_v only_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n wherefore_o like_v as_o a_o legate_n or_o ambassador_n can_v of_o himself_o communicate_v or_o delegate_v his_o authority_n to_o another_o or_o leave_v it_o by_o inheritance_n to_o his_o successor_n so_o the_o other_o apostle_n leave_v not_o all_o their_o authority_n in_o so_o ample_a sort_n as_o they_o receive_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n who_o succeed_v they_o contrariwise_o s._n peter_n as_o absolute_a prince_n have_v absolute_a and_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n under_o christ_n leave_v the_o same_o to_o his_o successor_n or_o heir_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o doctrine_n we_o receive_v from_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o martyr_n s._n cyprian_n who_o of_o this_o point_n discourse_v thus_o 3._o cipr._n lib._n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 3._o to_o peter_n our_o lord_n after_o his_o resurrection_n say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o he_o alone_o and_o to_o he_o be_v give_v the_o charge_n of_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o although_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o give_v his_o power_n alike_o to_o all_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o take_v the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o you_o remit_v to_o any_o their_o sin_n they_o shall_v be_v remit_v etc._n etc._n yet_o to_o manifest_a unity_n he_o constitute_v one_o chair_n and_o dispose_v by_o his_o authority_n the_o origin_n or_o fountain_n of_o the_o same_o begin_n of_o one_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v that_o peter_n be_v in_o equal_a felloweshippe_n of_o honour_n and_o power_n but_o the_o beginning_n come_v of_o unity_n the_o primacy_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v one_o and_o one_o chair_n thus_o far_o s._n cyprian_n in_o which_o word_n he_o plain_o avouch_v that_o s._n peter_n have_v supreme_a and_o ordinary_a authority_n the_o other_o apostle_n although_o they_o have_v equal_a and_o like_a apostolic_a power_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o equal_a to_o he_o in_o all_o prerogative_n this_o their_o authority_n as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v not_o ordinary_a nor_o so_o absolute_a but_o depend_v &_o have_v his_o beginning_n of_o that_o of_o peter_n 4._o ibid._n ca_fw-mi 4._o hence_o the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o self_n same_o book_n affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v one_o like_v as_o all_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v term_v one_o light_n because_o they_o issue_n from_o one_o sun_n and_o many_o little_a brook_n one_o water_n because_o they_o proceed_v from_o one_o spring_n and_o many_o bough_n one_o tree_n because_o they_o have_v the_o self_n same_o root_n and_o this_o sun_n fountain_n and_o root_n in_o other_o place_n he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v therefore_o by_o he_o call_v jubaianum_fw-la call_v cipr._n l._n 1._o epist_n 3._o ad_fw-la cornel._n li._n 4._o epist_n 8._o ad_fw-la cornel._n epi._n ad_fw-la jubaianum_fw-la the_o principal_a church_n from_o which_o priestly_a unity_n have_v his_o beginning_n and_o the_o matrice_n or_o mother_n root_n and_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v also_o by_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o one_o church_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v build_v upon_o one_o who_o receive_v the_o key_n etc._n etc._n i_o can_v recite_v other_o such_o like_a testimony_n but_o these_o in_o this_o place_n shall_v suffice_v and_o although_o s._n peter_n have_v so_o ample_a and_o eminent_a authority_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n his_o successor_n be_v sometime_o honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o 6._o of_o council_n chal._n act_n 3._o et_fw-la 6._o chalcedon_n yet_o they_o seldom_o or_o never_o call_v themselves_o so_o but_o rather_o follow_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n who_o bid_v that_o 26._o that_o math._n 20._o v._n 26._o whosoever_o will_v be_v great_a among_o his_o apostle_n shall_v be_v their_o servant_n or_o minister_n call_v themselves_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n hence_o be_v these_o word_n of_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o be_v high_o commend_v by_o 624._o by_o humfre_n in_o jesuitif_n part_n 2._o rat_n 5._o p._n 624._o d._n humphrey_n and_o by_o another_o 3._o another_o theodor._n bibli_fw-la in_o orat_fw-la ad_fw-la principes_fw-la germa_n see_v also_o godwin_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o bishop_n in_o augustine_n pag._n 3._o protestant_n although_o he_o term_v all_o his_o successor_n antechrist_n call_v a_o very_a holy_a father_n and_o most_o excellent_a pastor_n he_o discourse_v thus_o 32.76_o thus_o greg._n l._n 4._o epist_n 32.76_o it_o be_v plain_a to_o all_o man_n that_o ever_o read_v the_o gospel_n that_o by_o our_o lord_n mouth_n the_o charge_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v commit_v to_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n for_o he_o be_v the_o prayer_n make_v that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v to_o he_o be_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n give_v and_o authority_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v to_o he_o the_o cure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o principallity_n be_v deliver_v and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o call_v the_o universal_a apostle_n this_o title_n indeed_o be_v offer_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n but_o none_o of_o that_o see_v do_v ever_o use_v it_o nor_o consent_n to_o take_v it_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o discourse_n of_o s._n gregory_n write_v against_o john_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n usurp_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o although_o some_o of_o his_o predecessor_n after_o some_o sort_n and_o in_o some_o sense_n use_v when_o they_o call_v themselves_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n yet_o he_o therefore_o dislike_v 65._o sixtus_n 1._o epis_n 2._o victor_n 1._o epi._n 1._o pontian_n epist_n 2._o stephan_n 1._o epi._n 2._o leo_n epist_n 54._o 62._o et_fw-la 65._o because_o it_o seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o he_o who_o shall_v use_v it_o be_v himself_o the_o only_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n his_o vicar_n not_o his_o brethren_n whereas_o every_o bishop_n be_v head_n &_o bishop_n of_o his_o particular_a church_n although_o subject_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o ministerial_a head_n of_o his_o whole_a flock_n the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n very_o that_o s._n gregory_n word_n have_v no_o other_o sense_n it_o be_v aver_v by_o 570._o by_o andraeas_n fricius_n de_fw-fr eccles_n li._n 2._o cap._n
lib._n 5._o epist_n 32._o s._n gregory_n of_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n to_o s._n peter_n infer_v that_o unto_o his_o charge_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v commit_v and_o that_o he_o be_v make_v pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o when_o do_v christ_n perform_v these_o promise_n very_o no_o man_n i_o think_v will_v be_v so_o wicked_a and_o blaspheamous_a as_o to_o say_v that_o our_o redeemer_n be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o his_o word_n when_o then_o be_v these_o promise_n perform_v in_o very_a truth_n after_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n when_o as_o he_o make_v this_o bless_a apostle_n general_a pastor_n over_o all_o his_o flock_n exempt_n none_o no_o not_o the_o other_o apostle_n themselves_o from_o his_o jurisdiction_n but_o commit_v all_o both_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n to_o his_o charge_n for_o he_o say_v to_o he_o 16.17.18_o he_o john_n 21._o verse_n 16.17.18_o feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o very_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o by_o these_o word_n supreme_a authority_n under_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o this_o apostle_n over_o all_o the_o flock_n and_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o what_o other_o meaning_n can_v they_o admit_v every_o man_n will_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o he_o that_o feed_v sheep_n to_o provide_v they_o food_n which_o belong_v to_o a_o superior_a &_o governor_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o feed_v guide_n defend_v rule_n correct_v then_o to_o be_v superior_a over_o his_o flock_n and_o this_o also_o the_o greek_a word_n use_v by_o the_o evangelist_n in_o this_o place_n convince_v which_o signify_v to_o feed_v by_o rule_v and_o be_v superior_a moreover_o who_o can_v deny_v but_o those_o word_n my_o lamb_n and_o my_o sheep_n comprehend_v all_o christian_n for_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o lie_v sort_n of_o people_n and_o such_o as_o be_v not_o spiritual_a pastor_n over_o other_o the_o sheep_n be_v the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o bring_v forth_o unto_o christ_n lamb_n add_v also_o that_o all_o the_o lamb_n and_o sheep_n of_o christ_n without_o any_o limitation_n or_o restriction_n be_v here_o commit_v to_o s._n peter_n charge_n wherefore_o no_o man_n can_v exempt_v himself_o from_o his_o jurisdiction_n except_o he_o will_v deny_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o sheep_n or_o lamb_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o those_o word_n of_o our_o redeemer_n i_o know_v my_o sheep_n 14._o joh._n 1_o 14._o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n i_o yield_v my_o life_n for_o my_o sheep_n for_o like_v as_o in_o these_o place_n the_o word_n sheep_n signify_v all_o christian_n so_o it_o must_v needs_o do_v in_o those_o word_n feed_v my_o lamb_n feed_v my_o sheep_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o in_o these_o word_n all_o the_o member_n or_o child_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v commit_v to_o s._n peter_n charge_n and_o that_o he_o be_v make_v pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a fold_n and_o flock_n of_o christ_n but_o let_v we_o confirm_v all_o this_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n s._n leo_n of_o this_o matter_n discourse_v thus_o sva_fw-la leo_fw-la serm_n 3._o the_o assumpt_n sva_fw-la of_o the_o whole_a world_n one_o peter_n be_v choose_v that_o he_o may_v be_v prefer_v and_o make_v superior_a over_o the_o vocation_n of_o all_o nation_n over_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o although_o among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n there_o be_v many_o priest_n and_o many_o pastor_n yet_o peter_n may_v proper_o rule_v they_o all_o who_o principal_o also_o christ_n do_v govern_v sacerdotio_fw-la epiph._n in_o anc_n orat_fw-la chrisost_n lib._n de_fw-fr sacerdotio_fw-la hitherto_o saint_n leo._n the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v we_o also_o by_o s._n epiphanius_n who_o speak_v thus_o of_o s._n peter_n this_o be_v he_o who_o hear_v feed_v my_o sheep_n to_o who_o the_o fold_n of_o christ_n be_v commit_v s._n chrisostome_n likewise_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o our_o lord_n do_v shed_v his_o blood_n to_o redeem_v those_o sheep_n the_o care_n of_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o also_o to_o his_o successor_n that_o christ_n will_v have_v peter_n to_o be_v far_o above_o all_o his_o other_o apostle_n that_o be_v appoint_v he_o pastor_n of_o his_o future_a church_n that_o he_o commit_v to_o he_o the_o care_n of_o his_o brother_n and_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n he_o also_o call_v his_o office_n then_o receive_v praefecturam_fw-la that_o be_v a_o lieutenant_n ship_n or_o office_n commit_v unto_o he_o to_o judge_v and_o govern_v 1704._o ambros_n in_o cap._n ult._n lucae_n ceatur_fw-la 4._o col_fw-fr 556._o 1704._o and_o explicate_v it_o by_o that_o place_n of_o scripture_n matthew_n 24._o v._o 45._o who_o think_v thou_o be_v a_o faithful_a &_o wise_a servant_n who_o his_o lord_n have_v appoint_v over_o his_o family_n s._n ambrose_n affirm_v that_o by_o these_o word_n feed_v my_o sheep_n he_o leave_v peter_n unto_o we_o as_o the_o vicar_n of_o his_o love_n and_o that_o he_o be_v therefore_o prefer_v before_o all_o because_o he_o only_o profess_v such_o love_n final_o our_o adversary_n confess_v that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n honour_v s._n peter_n with_o these_o title_n head_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n another_o argument_n also_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o may_v be_v gather_v of_o this_o that_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o say_a scripture_n be_v not_o only_o call_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o among_o the_o rest_n when_o they_o be_v name_v obtain_v the_o first_o place_n he_o be_v call_v the_o first_o by_o 2._o by_o math._n 10_o 2._o s._n matthew_n according_a as_o we_o read_v in_o all_o greek_a and_o latin_a copy_n the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n be_v these_o and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v these_o the_o first_o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n he_o be_v likewise_o name_v first_o common_o in_o diverse_a place_n as_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v moreover_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o certain_a and_o confess_v by_o all_o christian_n that_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o new_a and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n succeed_v in_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n now_o that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n there_o be_v always_o one_o high_a priest_n no_o man_n read_v the_o old_a testament_n can_v deny_v and_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o especial_o by_o the_o 157._o the_o magde_v centur_fw-la 1._o lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o col_fw-fr 157._o magdeburgenses_n and_o caluin_n of_o who_o the_o first_o write_v thus_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n there_o be_v one_o only_o high_a or_o chief_a priest_n by_o the_o divine_a law_n who_o all_o be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v &_o obey_v etc._n obey_v calu._n li._n 4._o insti_fw-la c._n 6._o §_o 2._o etc._n etc._n caluins_n word_n be_v these_o there_o he_o appoint_v one_o prelate_n above_o the_o rest_n who_o all_o shall_v respect_v or_o obey_v that_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o may_v the_o better_o be_v keep_v in_o unity_n hitherto_o our_o adversary_n like_a as_o therefore_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o be_v one_o superior_a of_o who_o be_v those_o word_n of_o god_n 20._o god_n deutro_n 17._o v._n 20._o he_o that_o shall_v be_v proud_a refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o at_o that_o time_n do_v ministrate_n to_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v to_o wit_n a_o corporal_a death_n which_o word_n our_o 28._o our_o rain_n in_o his_o confer_v pag._n 251._o whitak_n de_fw-fr sacr_n scriptura_fw-la pa._n 466._o 470._o bilson_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n p._n 20._o hook_n in_o his_o preface_n pag._n 26._o 27._o 28._o adversary_n understand_v of_o his_o supreme_a authority_n both_o in_o cause_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a without_o appeal_n to_o any_o high_a so_o in_o the_o new_a law_n it_o be_v convenient_a that_o christ_n shall_v appoint_v one_o high_a priest_n his_o vicar_n over_o all_o the_o church_n who_o sentence_n whosoever_o despise_v he_o shall_v die_v spiritual_o in_o his_o soul_n and_o be_v account_v no_o child_n of_o the_o church_n hence_o proceed_v these_o word_n of_o ecclesiae_fw-la of_o cyprian_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la s._n cyprian_n he_o that_o withstand_v and_o resist_v the_o church_n he_o that_o forsake_v peter_n chair_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v do_v he_o trust_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o church_n further_o like_v as_o the_o true_a church_n be_v among_o the_o jew_n
policy_n of_o the_o church_n to_o avoid_v schism_n and_o to_o preserve_v it_o in_o unity_n and_o he_o prove_v this_o out_o of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o apostle_n corin._n 14._o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o confusion_n or_o disorder_n but_o say_v he_o to_o have_v a_o popular_a equality_n among_o minister_n be_v the_o next_o way_n to_o bring_v in_o confusion_n if_o none_o shall_v be_v rule_v or_o direct_v wherefore_o he_o add_v in_o another_o place_n that_o in_o the_o call_n of_o bishop_n somewhat_o be_v divine_a and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n that_o among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o superiority_n for_o the_o proof_n likewise_o of_o the_o same_o they_o bring_v the_o testimony_n of_o some_o 1600._o some_o ibid._n controver_n 16._o quest_n 2._o p._n 726._o edit_n a_o 1600._o other_o learned_a sectary_n especial_o of_o derberg_fw-mi of_o jacob_n andraeas_n in_o epistola_fw-la contra_fw-la minist_n heil_n derberg_fw-mi jacobus_n andraeas_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n be_v necessary_a over_o priest_n and_o a_o archbishop_n over_o bishop_n and_o a_o primate_n over_o archbishop_n for_o the_o preserve_n of_o unity_n in_o certain_a province_n nation_n or_o kingdom_n that_o over_o sundry_a primate_fw-la one_o supreme_a primate_n or_o head_n be_v also_o needful_a for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o say_a unity_n through_o all_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n discipl_n kingdom_n survey_v of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a discipl_n if_o it_o be_v true_a as_o field_n affirm_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o each_o particular_a church_n depend_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o pastor_n how_o much_o more_o do_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o universal_a catholic_a church_n depend_v on_o the_o unity_n of_o one_o universal_a pastor_n over_o all_o yea_o of_o these_o thing_n we_o may_v well_o infer_v that_o god_n who_o be_v never_o want_v to_o his_o church_n in_o thing_n necessary_a have_v ordain_v some_o such_o prelate_n for_o much_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o preserve_v unity_n and_o uniformity_n in_o one_o kingdom_n without_o a_o primate_n or_o in_o one_o province_n without_o a_o archbishop_n or_o in_o one_o diocese_n without_o a_o bishop_n than_o it_o be_v to_o preserve_v the_o same_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n without_o one_o head_n over_o all_o see_v that_o those_o of_o one_o kingdom_n province_n or_o diocese_n live_v under_o the_o same_o law_n have_v the_o same_o temporal_a prince_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o neighbourhood_n may_v be_v join_v together_o in_o amity_n and_o friendship_n and_o so_o one_o may_v understand_v the_o faith_n and_o belief_n of_o another_o and_o confer_v together_o concern_v such_o matter_n which_o occasion_n of_o unity_n be_v want_v to_o those_o who_o be_v of_o several_a kingdom_n or_o common_a wealth_n wherefore_o for_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o one_o chief_a pastor_n we_o have_v a_o express_a warrant_n of_o holy_a scripture_n whereas_o there_o be_v but_o little_a so_o express_o utter_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n nothing_o almost_o for_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o primate_fw-la and_o archishop_n neither_o can_v this_o unity_n be_v sufficient_o preserve_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o daily_a dissension_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o i_o will_v at_o large_a declare_v hereafter_o some_o of_o the_o sectary_n seem_v to_o allow_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o fit_a mean_a to_o end_v all_o controversy_n as_o etc._n as_o hooker_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n p._n 24._o etc._n etc._n hooker_n hooker_n hooker_n covel_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o hooker_n covel_n 12.13_o covel_n zauchius_n in_o his_o epistle_n before_o his_o confession_n p._n 12.13_o zauchius_n 42._o zauchius_n sutcliffe_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o kellison_n survey_v chapter_n 1._o pag._n 42._o sutcliffe_n and_o other_o but_o these_o may_v likewise_o easy_o be_v confute_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n that_o no_o good_a can_v be_v do_v by_o such_o a_o council_n except_o one_o head_n and_o superior_a in_o the_o same_o be_v grant_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1585._o henry_n now_o the_o french_a king_n and_o a_o catholic_a than_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o a_o caluinist_n send_v his_o letter_n to_o certain_a electour_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v lutheran_n protestant_n of_o germany_n desire_v a_o concord_n and_o reconciliation_n between_o the_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n and_o wish_v as_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o the_o answer_n that_o some_o council_n may_v be_v assemble_v of_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o both_o sort_n to_o that_o purpose_n the_o say_a protestant_n of_o germany_n return_v answer_v that_o in_o those_o day_n thing_n stand_v as_o they_o do_v they_o think_v it_o not_o necessary_a that_o such_o a_o course_n shall_v be_v take_v touch_v a_o council_n and_o why_o so_o very_o these_o reason_n be_v by_o they_o allege_v this_o principal_o say_v they_o seem_v worthy_a of_o our_o consideration_n whether_o now_o between_o the_o divine_n of_o other_o church_n and_o we_o any_o synod_n can_v be_v call_v and_o assemble_v for_o who_o of_o we_o will_v arrogate_v to_o himself_o to_o appoint_v the_o place_n to_o name_v the_o day_n to_o call_v the_o divine_n of_o diverse_a nation_n which_o as_o history_n testify_v be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n before_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n increase_v now_o moreover_o who_o shall_v have_v rule_n or_o be_v superior_a in_o authority_n in_o the_o synod_n itself_o there_o can_v no_o other_o have_v this_o office_n but_o either_o one_o of_o our_o side_n or_o of_o our_o adversary_n but_o neither_o we_o will_v suffer_v a_o precedent_n or_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o adverse_a part_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o we_o so_o neither_o will_v they_o without_o doubt_n endure_v that_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v have_v that_o place_n but_o if_o of_o both_o side_n some_o be_v appoint_v than_o each_o one_o will_v undertake_v the_o patronage_n of_o his_o own_o part_n and_o so_o there_o will_v arise_v dissension_n between_o the_o precedent_n further_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n over_o those_o that_o vary_v or_o contend_v but_o let_v we_o put_v the_o case_n or_o rather_o fain_a and_o imagine_v that_o the_o synod_n be_v now_o call_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_o argue_v on_o both_o side_n that_o the_o precedent_n have_v pronounce_v their_o sentence_n that_o the_o pertinacious_a and_o fanatical_a be_v condemn_v and_o accurse_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n and_o suffrage_n of_o all_o who_o then_o shall_v bridle_v and_o restrain_v the_o clamour_n of_o the_o condemn_v their_o complaint_n their_o accusation_n by_o which_o they_o will_v exclaim_v that_o the_o proceed_n against_o they_o have_v be_v unjust_a that_o they_o be_v not_o right_o hear_v that_o judgement_n be_v give_v rather_o according_a to_o affection_n then_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n hence_o will_v arise_v new_a swarm_n of_o contention_n and_o the_o synod_n be_v end_v the_o church_n will_v enjoy_v no_o more_o quietness_n tranquillity_n and_o peace_n than_o be_v before_o thus_o the_o aforesaid_a prince_n of_o germany_n in_o their_o letter_n pen_v without_o all_o doubt_n or_o at_o the_o least_o view_v and_o approve_v by_o their_o best_a divine_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n the_o elector_n of_o brandeburg_n the_o administrator_n of_o magdeburge_n philip_n lewes_n palatine_n of_o rhine_n julius_n duke_n of_o brunswich_n and_o luneberg_n vdalricus_n duke_n of_o mechelburg_n and_o lewes_n duke_n of_o wittenberg_n subscribe_v unto_o it_o and_o the_o letter_n together_o with_o the_o subscription_n be_v publish_v in_o print_n by_o conradus_n schusselburg_n a_o famous_a lutheran_n divine_a at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o thirteen_o book_n of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o heretic_n how_o then_o can_v any_o person_n say_v that_o controversy_n may_v always_o be_v sufficient_o decide_v and_o end_v by_o a_o council_n without_o one_o head_n be_v not_o these_o reason_n most_o true_a and_o apparent_a nay_o have_v not_o experience_n teach_v we_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o thing_n what_o success_n have_v the_o colloquy_n or_o conference_n hold_v for_o the_o reconciliation_n or_o union_n of_o lutheran_n &_o sacramentary_n between_o their_o chief_a doctor_n at_o malbrun_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o four_o flaccian_a see_v colloquium_fw-la mont_fw-fr pelgartense_n publish_v by_o protestant_n david_n chitrae_n in_o chron_n saxo_n part_n 3._o ā_o 1568._o p._n 440._o 441._o johan._n petraeus_n admonit_a quae_fw-la docet_fw-la vitandos_fw-la esse_fw-la flaccian_a or_o at_o montpelgar_a in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o fourscore_o and_o six_o be_v any_o unity_n or_o concord_n make_v between_o they_o nothing_o less_o neither_o be_v
the_o event_n of_o particular_a assembly_n of_o lutheran_n only_o concern_v some_o difference_n find_v among_o themselves_o any_o better_a in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o threescore_o &_o eight_o as_o chitraeus_fw-la himself_n a_o famous_a writer_n of_o this_o sect_n record_v be_v that_o famous_a assembly_n of_o lutheran_n hold_v at_o altenberg_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n and_o free_a will_n which_o as_o he_o tell_v we_o be_v dissolve_v without_o any_o hope_n of_o concord_n and_o say_v he_o the_o act_n be_v set_v out_o on_o both_o side_n and_o not_o only_o the_o divine_n do_v contend_v with_o public_a invective_n but_o also_o most_o bitter_a hatred_n be_v raise_v between_o the_o prince_n themselves_o who_o cause_v this_o assembly_n yea_o another_o lutheran_n of_o the_o same_o meeting_n write_v thus_o this_o whole_a conference_n be_v not_o only_o dissolve_v without_o fruit_n but_o also_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n become_v worse_a the_o like_a have_v happen_v in_o other_o of_o their_o synod_n for_o i_o find_v it_o not_o record_v that_o ever_o hitherto_o two_o nation_n or_o different_a church_n of_o these_o sectary_n be_v unite_v together_o by_o any_o council_n hold_v among_o they_o but_o unto_o the_o lutheran_n above_o cite_v i_o add_v also_o the_o authority_n of_o whitaker_n who_o grant_v 56._o whitaker_n li._n de_fw-la consilijs_fw-la p._n 56._o that_o without_o authority_n no_o council_n can_v be_v assemble_v and_o see_v that_o no_o one_o according_a to_o protestant_n have_v authority_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o follow_v that_o in_o their_o judgement_n no_o council_n can_v be_v assemble_v of_o all_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o world_n and_o out_o of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n join_v unto_o that_o maintain_v by_o diverse_a of_o they_o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o general_a counsel_n which_o be_v likewise_o strong_o by_o i_o prove_v before_o i_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v appoint_v some_o one_o general_a visible_a head_n over_o his_o church_n which_o illation_n be_v very_o evident_a for_o if_o general_a counsel_n be_v necessary_a and_o they_o can_v be_v have_v without_o a_o head_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o christ_n who_o be_v not_o want_v to_o his_o church_n in_o thing_n necessary_a ordain_v some_o such_o head_n 570._o andraeas_n fricius_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la l._n 2._o cap._n 10._o pag._n 570._o hence_o andraeas_n fricius_n although_o a_o protestant_n and_o a_o man_n bear_v deadly_a hatred_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o think_v it_o needful_a that_o one_o head_n shall_v be_v appoint_v over_o all_o the_o evangellical_a church_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o unity_n which_o he_o deem_v otherwise_o will_v never_o be_v and_o handle_v that_o matter_n he_o also_o true_o answer_v that_o common_a objection_n of_o protestant_n touch_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n of_o which_o before_o but_o the_o lutheran_n as_o we_o have_v see_v aver_v that_o it_o be_v in_o time_n past_o the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n to_o call_v general_a counsel_n i_o reply_v first_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o christ_n bequeath_v not_o this_o office_n to_o the_o emperor_n both_o because_o the_o office_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n christ_n if_o he_o have_v so_o do_v shall_v have_v take_v order_n that_o ever_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v some_o one_o emperor_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o discharge_v the_o same_o which_o as_o be_v evident_a he_o do_v not_o and_o also_o because_o many_o of_o the_o emperor_n have_v be_v infidel_n some_o heretic_n and_o therefore_o in_o all_o reason_n not_o capable_a of_o any_o such_o pre-eminence_n in_o the_o church_n second_o it_o be_v very_o well_o prove_v by_o catholic_a author_n that_o there_o never_o have_v be_v any_o one_o lawful_a general_a council_n assemble_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o emperor_n alone_o without_o the_o consent_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o i_o confirm_v only_o in_o this_o place_n by_o a_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n allege_v by_o socrates_n which_o as_o he_o say_v forbid_v 13._o socrates_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 13._o that_o decree_n be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o see_v that_o this_o canon_n be_v not_o make_v by_o any_o council_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o it_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o of_o this_o point_n enough_o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n deny_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n because_o say_v they_o s._n peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n i_o reply_v that_o nothing_o not_o most_o plain_o express_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o not_o know_v by_o divine_a revelation_n can_v be_v more_o certain_a than_o that_o s._n peter_n live_v in_o rome_n and_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o this_o be_v affirm_v by_o all_o ancient_a and_o modern_a writer_n 47._o luther_n in_o colloquijs_fw-la mensalibus_fw-la cap._n de_fw-fr antichristo_fw-la peter_n 5._o verse_n 13._o see_v caluin_n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la ca._n 6._o §_o 15._o and_o bilson_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n cap._n 13._o psal_n 47._o beside_o a_o few_o new_a sectary_n hence_o be_v these_o word_n of_o luther_n all_o history_n testify_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o they_o be_v mere_a fable_n and_o why_o do_v our_o adversary_n deny_v so_o manifest_a a_o truth_n true_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o to_o prejudice_v and_o weaken_v the_o pope_n authority_n by_o which_o they_o be_v condemn_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o ancient_a author_n that_o ever_o call_v the_o matter_n in_o question_n as_o doubtful_a and_o the_o monument_n themselves_o of_o rome_n most_o evident_o convince_v our_o assertion_n to_o be_v true_a yea_o it_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o s._n peter_n own_o word_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o confess_v by_o the_o best_a learned_a of_o our_o adversary_n other_o say_v that_o the_o privilege_n of_o s._n peter_n mention_v perish_v together_o with_o he_o and_o be_v not_o derive_v to_o his_o successor_n but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n promise_n make_v to_o this_o bless_a apostle_n together_o with_o his_o office_n descend_v to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o successor_n this_o i_o have_v partly_o prove_v in_o the_o second_o section_n of_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n before_o where_o i_o have_v declare_v that_o the_o promise_v make_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o apostle_n concern_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n be_v to_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n during_o all_o age_n ensue_v in_o this_o place_n i_o will_v only_o repeat_v that_o no_o man_n of_o sense_n will_v imagine_v that_o christ_n build_v his_o church_n for_o ever_o provide_v pastor_n and_o apostolic_a officer_n only_o for_o it_o during_o the_o life_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o like_o as_o the_o same_o church_n so_o the_o same_o governor_n though_o not_o in_o person_n yet_o in_o power_n be_v always_o extant_a in_o the_o world_n 11._o euseb_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 22._o 24._o 25._o athan_n l._n the_o scent_n dionisij_n alexandrini_n cipr._n l._n 3._o epist_n 13._o athan._n apolog_fw-la 2._o et_fw-la in_o epist_n ad_fw-la ●olitarios_fw-la socrates_n l._n 2._o cap_n 11._o hence_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v always_o exercise_v his_o authority_n throughout_o all_o country_n and_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n pope_n victor_n without_o any_o note_n or_o censure_v of_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o his_o authority_n about_o the_o year_n one_o hundred_o fourscore_o &_o eighteen_o excommunicate_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n s._n dionysius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v accuse_v not_o long_o after_o before_o pope_n dionysius_n as_o s._n athanasius_n tell_v we_o and_o neither_o do_v the_o pope_n although_o himself_o also_o a_o saint_n refuse_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n or_o the_o bishop_n accuse_v his_o judgement_n s._n cyprian_n request_v pope_n steven_n to_o the_o pose_n martianus_n bishop_n of_o arles_n in_o france_n and_o to_o ordain_v another_o in_o his_o place_n s._n athanasius_n report_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v condemn_v and_o deprive_v of_o his_o bishopric_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o year_n three_o hundred_o thirty_o and_o six_o by_o a_o false_a synod_n hold_v at_o tirus_fw-la and_o have_v receive_v the_o same_o censure_n of_o condemnation_n by_o such_o another_o synod_n assemble_v at_o antioch_n in_o the_o year_n 341._o be_v absolve_v by_o pope_n julius_n and_o restore_v again_o to_o his_o bishopric_n notwithstanding_o these_o former_a sentence_n pronounce_v against_o he_o the_o same_o pope_n if_o we_o believe_v socrates_n restore_v paul_n bishop_n of_o
constantinople_n and_o asclepas_n bishop_n of_o gaza_n in_o like_a sort_n to_o their_o church_n who_o be_v wrongful_o deprive_v appeal_v to_o his_o supreme_a authority_n s._n damasus_n the_o pope_n about_o the_o year_n three_o hundre_v seaventy_fw-mi seven_o restore_v in_o like_a sort_n peter_n patriarcke_v of_o alexandria_n to_o his_o seat_n from_o which_o he_o be_v likewise_o unjust_o expel_v by_o the_o arian_n as_o witness_n be_v zozomenus_n and_o 30._o and_o socrates_n li._n 4_o c._n 30._o socrates_n glica_fw-la socrates_n chrisos_fw-la ep_v ad_fw-la inno._n theodorus_n rom._n diac_n apud_fw-la pallad_n in_o dial_n inno._n papa_n in_o literis_fw-la ad_fw-la archad_n apud_fw-la gena_n nicepho_n et_fw-la glica_fw-la s._n john_n chrisostome_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n four_o hundred_o and_o four_o be_v by_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o other_o bishop_n in_o a_o council_n depose_v appeal_v to_o s._n innocentius_n pope_n who_o not_o only_o make_v void_a the_o sentence_n pronounce_v against_o he_o but_o also_o excommunicate_v and_o depose_v the_o say_a theophilus_n 3._o theophilus_n calest_fw-la epi_fw-la ad_fw-la nestor_n et_fw-la ad_fw-la ciril_n ep_v 3._o pope_n caelestinus_n not_o long_o after_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o rome_n first_o of_o all_o condemn_a the_o nestorian_a heresy_n allot_v nestorius_n himself_o then_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n only_o ten_o day_n within_o which_o if_o he_o do_v not_o repent_v he_o shall_v receive_v the_o same_o censure_n from_o s._n ciril_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n his_o legate_n 12._o legate_n liberatus_n ca._n 12._o s._n flavianus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n condemn_v in_o the_o pseudosinod_n of_o ephesus_n by_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o other_o appeal_v to_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o do_v also_o 113._o also_o theodor._n epist_n 113._o theodoretus_n bishop_n of_o cirus_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o diverse_a other_o such_o like_a example_n may_v be_v allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n approve_v the_o same_o superiority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v almost_o infinite_a but_o i_o can_v not_o stand_v to_o recite_v they_o only_o this_o i_o note_v that_o almost_o the_o same_o title_n of_o primacy_n and_o dignity_n be_v give_v in_o ancient_a age_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o like_v as_o s._n peter_n by_o 14._o by_o euseb_n in_o chronic._n a_o 44._o et_fw-la lib._n 2._o hist_o cap._n 14._o eusebius_n be_v call_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o christian_n the_o great_a of_o the_o apostle_n the_o prince_n and_o captain_n of_o the_o chief_a and_o the_o master_n of_o the_o warfare_n of_o god_n by_o euangel_n by_o orig._n homil_n 2._o in_o diversos_fw-la euangel_n origenes_n the_o top_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o 51._o by_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 51._o s._n epiphanius_n captain_n of_o christ_n disciple_n by_o 2._o by_o cir._n hierosol_n catech_n 2._o s._n ciril_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n most_o excellent_a prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o joan_n by_o ciril_n alex._n l._n 12._o in_o joan_n s._n ciril_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n prince_n and_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n by_o mat._n by_o chrisos_fw-la in_o 1._o cor._n 15._o et_fw-la hom_n 11._o in_o mat._n s._n crisostome_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n by_o eccles_n by_o cipr._n l._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n s._n cyprian_n the_o head_n fountain_n and_o root_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n etc._n etc._n so_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o corne._n by_o see_v cip._n epi._n 46._o ad_fw-la cornel._n et_fw-fr li._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccle._n l._n 1._o epist_n 3._o ad_fw-la corn._n et_fw-fr ep_n 8._o ad_fw-la pleben_fw-mi et_fw-la l._n 2._o epi._n 10._o ad_fw-la eun_fw-mi den_fw-mi corne._n s._n cyprian_n be_v term_v bishop_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a catholic_a church_n by_o siricium_n by_o amb._n in_o c._n 3._o 1._o tim._n et_fw-fr epi._n 81._o ad_fw-la siricium_n s._n ambrose_n rector_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o dama_n by_o steph._n episco_n carthag_n epist_n ad_fw-la dama_n steven_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n father_n of_o father_n and_o chief_a or_o high_a priest_n by_o damasum_fw-la by_o hieron_n praefat_fw-la euangel_n ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la s._n hierome_n high_a or_o chief_a priest_n by_o the_o general_a council_n of_o leon_n of_o concilium_fw-la chalced._n epi_fw-la ad_fw-la leon_n chalcedon_n head_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o keeper_n of_o our_o lord_n vineyard_n and_o by_o 157._o by_o aug._n epist_n 157._o s._n augustine_n bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n etc._n etc._n final_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o seem_v to_o grant_v that_o all_o antiquity_n acknowledge_v this_o superiority_n bucer_n write_v thus_o concilium_fw-la thus_o bucerus_n in_o praeparatorijs_fw-la ad_fw-la concilium_fw-la we_o plain_o confess_v that_o among_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n the_o roman_a church_n obtain_v the_o primacy_n above_o other_o as_o that_o which_o have_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o who_o bishop_n almost_o always_o have_v be_v account_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n 520._o peter_n ceatur_fw-la 2._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 63._o cent._n 3._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 8._o cent._n 5._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 512._o 520._o the_o centurie_n writer_n who_o be_v common_o account_v the_o most_o diligent_a and_o learned_a protestant_a historian_n censure_n s._n irenaeus_n s._n ignatius_n tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n origenes_n s._n leo_n and_o s._n ciril_n as_o maintainer_n of_o this_o supreamacie_n 1100._o supreamacie_n cent._n 4._o c._n 10._o col_fw-fr 1010._o 1249._o 1074._o 1100._o they_o note_v s._n ephrem_n and_o s._n hierome_n for_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n 728._o peter_n cent._n 5._o c._n 6._o col_fw-fr 728._o arnobius_n for_o call_v s._n peter_n the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n optatus_n for_o extol_v overmuch_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n gelasius_n the_o pope_n for_o excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n etc._n etc._n beside_o this_o diverse_a of_o the_o sectary_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n 343._o rest_n beza_n cite_v in_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o pretend_a holy_a disci_fw-la c._n 27._o p._n 343._o beza_n 97._o beza_n cartw._n l._n 2._o p._n 507._o 508._o l._n 1._o p._n 97._o cartwrighte_a and_o 276._o and_o fulk_n against_o saund._n rock_n p._n 248._o 271._o upon_o the_o rheims_n test_n in_o 2._o thes_n 2_o 9_o see_v also_o dan._n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la bell._n disp_n part_n 1._o p._n 275._o 276._o fulk_n confess_v that_o the_o father_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a begin_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n yea_o some_o of_o they_o say_v it_o be_v begin_v long_o before_o their_o discord_n concern_v the_o time_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o superiority_n do_v also_o testify_v this_o as_o i_o can_v easile_a show_v if_o it_o be_v not_o that_o i_o have_v already_o be_v overlong_o in_o this_o section_n last_o i_o add_v that_o neither_o 6._o neither_o wicl_n in_o ep_v ad_fw-la vrban_n 6._o wickclif_n nor_o artic_a nor_o luth._o in_o resollut_n priorum_fw-la disput_fw-la ad_fw-la leon._n 10._o in_o declarat_fw-la quorund_fw-mi artic_a luther_n who_o in_o sundry_a age_n be_v the_o first_o raiser_n of_o rebellion_n against_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n deny_v the_o pope_n superiority_n before_o that_o he_o condemn_v their_o doctrine_n for_o the_o work_n of_o they_o both_o be_v yet_o extant_a write_v after_o their_o fall_n to_o preach_v novelty_n in_o which_o they_o most_o apparent_o and_o plain_o submit_v themselves_o and_o their_o doctrine_n to_o his_o censure_n and_o acknowledge_v his_o primacy_n of_o luther_n diverse_a 278._o diverse_a sleid._n l._n 1._o fol._n 10._o fox_n act_n &_o mon._n p._n 404._o osiander_n in_o epist_n cent._n 16._o p._n 61._o 62._o 68_o cowper_n in_o his_o chronic._n fol._n 278._o protestant_n testify_v the_o same_o and_o this_o be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o they_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o he_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o that_o he_o condemn_v their_o opinion_n and_o proceed_n section_n the_o third_z that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o church_n as_o supreme_a pastor_n be_v of_o divine_a and_o infallible_a authority_n and_o of_o some_o other_o ground_n of_o faith_n flow_v out_o of_o these_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o ministerial_a head_n of_o christ_n church_n it_o remain_v that_o now_o we_o see_v what_o authority_n and_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o his_o decree_n i_o affirm_v therefore_o that_o the_o pope_n when_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o same_o he_o define_v any_o matter_n concern_v faith_n and_o general_a precept_n of_o vice_n or_o virtue_n can_v err_v i_o add_v those_o word_n when_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n as_o ministerial_a head_n etc._n etc._n
be_v affirm_v in_o the_o 3._o the_o council_n chalcedon_n act_n 2._o et_fw-la 3._o four_o this_o also_o move_v s._n hierome_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o s._n damasus_n the_o pope_n to_o use_v these_o word_n damasum_fw-la word_n hieron_n to_o 2._o epist_n 7._o ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la i_o follow_v no_o chief_a or_o principal_n but_o christ_n join_v myself_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o peter_n chair_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v the_o same_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o this_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustine_n donati_n augustine_n aug._n to_o 7._o psal_n contra_fw-la parten_v donati_n count_v the_o priest_n say_v he_o from_o the_o very_o see_v of_o peter_n and_o in_o that_o order_n of_o father_n consider_v who_o to_o who_o have_v succeed_v that_o same_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o overcome_v final_o by_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n manifest_o show_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n 105._o bishop_n aug._n contra_fw-la epist_n manich._n ca._n 4._o et_fw-la epist_n 105._o he_o sever_v catholic_n from_o heretic_n our_o adversary_n bark_v against_o this_o accuse_v diverse_a pope_n of_o sundry_a error_n but_o they_o be_v all_o very_a well_o answer_v by_o diverse_a catholic_n and_o the_o pope_n manifest_o clear_v from_o their_o false_a slander_n i_o must_v further_o note_v in_o this_o place_n that_o although_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v of_o themselves_o be_v of_o a_o infallible_a truth_n touch_v the_o matter_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o define_v yet_o that_o some_o further_a authority_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a be_v add_v unto_o they_o when_o they_o be_v accept_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o they_o so_o accept_v can_v be_v false_a the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v contrary_a to_o that_o which_o have_v be_v prove_v before_o i_o must_v also_o add_v here_o two_o ground_n more_o flow_v out_o of_o this_o warrant_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n from_o error_n in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v provincial_a counsel_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o by_o such_o only_a diverse_a heresy_n have_v be_v condemn_v as_o that_o of_o the_o pelagian_n priscillianist_n of_o jovinian_a and_o other_o the_o second_o such_o ground_n be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n include_v the_o pope_n his_o clergy_n and_o people_n for_o unto_o this_o church_n as_o we_o be_v long_o since_o tell_v by_o 6._o by_o s._n cipr._n l._n 1._o epi._n 3._o et_fw-la 55._o num_fw-la 6._o s._n cyprian_n infidelity_n or_o false_a belief_n can_v have_v access_n ruffinum_fw-la access_n hieron_n epist_n 16._o c._n 3._o iten_v li._n 3._o apol._n contr_n ruffinum_fw-la s._n hierome_n call_v it_o the_o most_o safe_a haven_n of_o communion_n and_o likewise_o avouch_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n mouth_n will_v admit_v no_o deceit_n of_o heretic_n and_o that_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v change_v ibid._n change_v ambr._n in_o ora_fw-la de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satiri_fw-la circa_fw-la medium_n ambros_n ibid._n s._n ambrose_n affime_v that_o he_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n who_o accord_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o not_o only_o he_o but_o also_o antonianum_fw-la also_o cipr._n epi._n 52._o num._n 1._o ad_fw-la antonianum_fw-la s._n cyprian_n and_o 1._o and_o hieron_n apol_n 1._o advers_a ruffinun_n cap._n 1._o s._n hierome_n anerre_v that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o say_v the_o roman_a and_o the_o catholic_a faith_n section_n the_o four_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o sectary_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antechrist_n be_v brief_o confute_v and_o two_o objection_n against_o the_o premise_n be_v answer_v our_o 24._o our_o caluin_n ad_fw-la c._n 2._o poster_n ad_fw-la thess_n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la ca._n 7._o §_o 24._o adversary_n by_o diverse_a mean_n endeavour_v to_o overthrow_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n deliver_v and_o prove_v by_o i_o in_o this_o chapter_n nay_o the_o malice_n of_o some_o of_o they_o especial_o of_o our_o etc._n our_o bullenger_n willet_n in_o his_o sinop_n controver_n 2._o quest_n 5._o par_fw-fr 2._o etc._n etc._n puritan_n brethren_n extend_v itself_o so_o far_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a stout_o to_o aver_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o very_a antechrist_n foretell_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o this_o assertion_n be_v so_o absurd_a and_o opposite_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o all_o show_n of_o truth_n that_o diverse_a learned_a protestant_n not_o over-mastred_n by_o their_o passion_n reject_v it_o as_o false_a and_o among_o the_o rest_n 11._o rest_n covel_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o hooker_n artic_a 11._o m._n covel_n confess_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a of_o christ_n 1604._o christ_n hooker_n in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n §_o 1._o pag._n 128._o edit_n anno_o 1604._o hooker_n also_o himself_o in_o who_o defence_n he_o write_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n use_v these_o word_n with_o rome_n we_o dare_v not_o communicate_v concern_v her_o sundry_a gross_a and_o grievous_a abomination_n yet_o touch_v those_o main_a part_n of_o christian_a truth_n wherein_o they_o constant_o still_o persist_v we_o glad_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o family_n of_o jesus_n christ_n thus_o hooker_n but_o a_o little_a 127._o little_a pag._n 127._o before_o he_o discourse_v thus_o in_o s._n paul_n time_n the_o integrity_n of_o rome_n be_v famous_a corinth_n many_o way_n reprove_v they_o of_o galatia_n much_o more_o out_o of_o square_a in_o s._n johns_n time_n ephesus_n and_o smirna_n in_o far_o better_a state_n than_o thiatira_n and_o pergamus_n be_v we_o hope_v therefore_o that_o to_o reform_v ourselves_o if_o at_o any_o time_n we_o have_v do_v amiss_o be_v not_o to_o sever_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n we_o be_v of_o before_o in_o the_o church_n we_o be_v and_o we_o be_v so_o still_o hitherto_o be_v hooker_n word_n in_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o i_o plain_o to_o affirm_v both_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o also_o that_o it_o be_v no_o diverse_a church_n from_o that_o of_o the_o protestant_n of_o england_n which_o i_o think_v this_o learned_a man_n will_v not_o have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v imagine_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antechrist_n but_o this_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n notwithstanding_o brief_o i_o thus_o confute_v the_o aforesaid_a untrue_a and_o absurd_a opinion_n of_o other_o in_o the_o scripture_n we_o find_v that_o antechrist_n shall_v deny_v jesus_n to_o be_v christ_n who_o be_v a_o liar_n say_v s._n john_n but_o he_o who_o deni_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n 22._o 1._o john_n 2._o verse_n 22._o this_o be_v antechrist_n which_o deni_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n he_o shall_v also_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v christ_n and_o the_o jew_n shall_v receive_v he_o for_o their_o true_a messiah_n as_o we_o gather_v our_o of_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n unto_o the_o say_a jew_n if_o a_o other_o come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n 4._o john_n 5._o iren._n li._n 5._o ciril_n catech_n 15._o ambros_n in_o c._n 21._o luc._n 2._o thessaly_n 2._o vers_fw-la 4._o he_o you_o will_v receive_v that_o he_o shall_v affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v christ_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o s._n irenaeus_n s._n ciril_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n s._n ambrose_n and_o other_o that_o the_o jew_n shall_v receive_v he_o as_o christ_n it_o be_v avouch_v by_o all_o the_o father_n moreover_o antechrist_n shall_v public_o name_v himself_o to_o be_v god_n and_o covet_v to_o be_v worship_v as_o the_o only_a god_n this_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o shall_v be_v extol_v above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o though_o he_o be_v god_n these_o be_v some_o of_o the_o property_n of_o antechrist_n set_v down_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o none_o of_o these_o agree_v unto_o the_o pope_n for_o he_o neither_o deni_v christ_n nor_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v christ_n or_o be_v accept_v as_o christ_n by_o the_o jew_n final_o he_o be_v not_o worship_v as_o god_n but_o worship_v god_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o antechrist_n add_v also_o that_o antechrist_n shall_v be_v but_o one_o man_n he_o shall_v come_v immediate_o before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o shall_v reign_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o that_o at_o jerusalem_n as_o be_v evident_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o same_o holy_a scripture_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n by_o which_o likewise_o appear_v the_o falsehood_n of_o our_o adversary_n assertion_n but_o to_o impugn_v and_o overthrow_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o all_o make_v
upon_o this_o ground_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 2._o chap._n 2._o he_o enter_v into_o a_o rail_n and_o scoff_a discourse_n against_o the_o pope_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n i_o can_v do_v otherwise_o then_o marvel_v that_o a_o man_n of_o his_o place_n and_o learning_n do_v not_o blush_v to_o commit_v such_o a_o notorious_a untruth_n to_o the_o print_n and_o view_v of_o the_o world_n for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o assertion_n because_o it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n impertinent_a that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v most_o untrue_a repugnant_a to_o all_o antiquity_n and_o not_o only_o contrary_a to_o all_o proceed_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o say_a council_n but_o also_o to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n by_o he_o allege_v for_o in_o it_o be_v decree_v only_o that_o the_o city_n of_o new_a rome_n or_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v majesty_n like_a as_o old_a rome_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n et_fw-la secundam_fw-la post_fw-la illam_fw-la existere_fw-la that_o be_v shall_v be_v the_o second_o or_o next_o after_o it_o and_o enjoy_v certain_a privilege_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o some_o metrapolitan_o these_o be_v the_o content_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o what_o more_o touch_a this_o matter_n do_v the_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o that_o council_n in_o their_o sinodical_a epistle_n desire_n s._n leo_n the_o great_a than_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o confirm_v than_o this_o 3._o concilium_fw-la chalcedom_n sessio_fw-la 12._o alias_fw-la actione_n 16._o an._n christi_fw-la 451._o concilium_fw-la nice_n sessio_fw-la ultim_fw-la conci_fw-la chal._n actione_n 1._o actione_n 3._o we_o have_v confirm_v say_v they_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o seavenscore_n and_o ten_o holy_a father_n which_o be_v gather_v together_o at_o constantinople_n under_o theodosius_n of_o happy_a memory_n which_o command_v that_o the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v ordain_v the_o second_o have_v second_o honour_n after_o your_o most_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a see_v trust_v that_o the_o apostolical_a sunbeam_n shine_v with_o you_o etc._n etc._n but_o how_o can_v it_o be_v the_o second_o and_o next_o after_o and_o also_o the_o equal_a with_o it_o as_o field_n affirm_v beside_o this_o in_o the_o council_n itself_o those_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ever_o have_v the_o primacy_n be_v allow_v and_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo_n without_o reprehension_n or_o exception_n take_v say_v we_o have_v here_o at_o hand_n the_o commandment_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a and_o apostolic_a man_n the_o pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v head_n of_o all_o church_n by_o which_o his_o apostleship_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o command_v etc._n etc._n again_o one_o of_o they_o first_o subscribe_v as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a and_o apostolic_a universal_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n all_o the_o father_n write_v unto_o he_o thus_o we_o crave_v therefore_o that_o you_o will_v honour_v our_o decree_n with_o your_o judgement_n and_o like_a as_o we_o desirous_a have_v consent_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v good_a sic_fw-la et_fw-la summitas_fw-la tua_fw-la so_o thy_o chiefedome_n or_o pre-eminence_n above_o all_o will_v as_o it_o be_v meet_v accomplish_v they_o to_o his_o child_n hitherto_o be_v their_o word_n and_o what_o can_v be_v say_v more_o apparent_a for_o the_o pope_n supreamacie_n do_v not_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v their_o chief_n and_o themselves_o his_o son_n and_o child_n chapter_n gregor_n li_z 4._o epi._n 32._o 36._o 38._o li._n 7._o epi._n 30._o see_v before_o in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o can_v add_v to_o this_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o live_v not_o long_o after_o this_o council_n who_o against_o the_o ambition_n of_o john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o diverse_a letter_n confident_o affirm_v that_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n by_o this_o council_n be_v offer_v to_o pope_n leo._n but_o field_n will_v urge_v that_o it_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o some_o greek_a copy_n of_o this_o council_n that_o by_o this_o canon_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v so_o make_v second_o after_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o equal_a privilege_n be_v give_v he_o i_o answer_v that_o these_o privilege_n be_v only_o concern_v jurisdiction_n to_o order_v certain_a metrapolitan_o of_o the_o east_n church_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o like_a in_o the_o west_n but_o now_o suppose_v i_o shall_v grant_v m._n field_n that_o in_o this_o canon_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v make_v in_o every_o respect_n equal_a to_o the_o pope_n what_o will_v he_o get_v by_o this_o in_o truth_n nothing_o for_o of_o what_o authority_n be_v this_o canon_n sure_o of_o none_o for_o it_o be_v cunning_o make_v by_o the_o grecian_a bishop_n after_o the_o council_n be_v rise_v and_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo_n depart_v who_o also_o when_o it_o come_v to_o their_o knowledge_n the_o next_o day_n resist_v they_o in_o the_o next_o session_n yea_o this_o be_v never_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n without_o who_o confirmation_n the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n have_v never_o have_v force_n but_o be_v by_o pope_n leo_n forthwith_o overthrow_v and_o annul_v 61._o leo_n epist_n 55._o 53._o 54._o 61._o we_o cancel_v or_o make_v void_a say_v he_o speak_v of_o that_o canon_n and_o other_o then_o enact_v the_o consent_n of_o bishop_n repugnant_a to_o the_o nicene_n canon_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o bless_a s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n by_o a_o general_a definition_n we_o make_v they_o altogether_o of_o no_o force_n and_o this_o his_o decree_n be_v so_o high_o esteem_v in_o the_o east_n itself_o ecclesia_fw-la marcian_n l._n 12._o c._n de_fw-fr sacrosancta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la that_o it_o be_v confirm_v present_o by_o a_o imperial_a constitution_n even_o by_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n and_o anatolius_n the_o patriarcke_n through_o who_o ambition_n and_o instigation_n the_o say_a canon_n be_v make_v be_v constrain_v to_o cease_v from_o such_o proceed_n to_o relinquish_v that_o dignity_n which_o ambitioussie_n he_o cover_v and_o to_o take_v place_n even_o after_o the_o other_o patriarch_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o prefer_v he_o before_o those_o of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n authentical_a 1._o justin_n novel_a 131._o cap._n 2._o field_n book_n 3._o cap._n 1._o yea_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n after_o this_o even_o when_o rome_n be_v most_o in_o disgrace_n and_o constantinople_n flourish_v long_o before_o the_o day_n of_o phocas_n from_o who_o field_n will_v derive_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o pope_n superiority_n confirm_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o thus_o we_o may_v see_v upon_o how_o weak_a ground_n field_n do_v venture_v to_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o modesty_n concern_v the_o point_n itself_o of_o the_o pope_n infallible_a judgement_n he_o accuse_v we_o of_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o all_o hold_v at_o this_o day_n 45._o field_n book_n 3._o cap._n 45._o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o therefore_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o the_o same_o whereas_o the_o same_o man_n say_v he_o that_o hold_v this_o say_v also_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o acknowledge_v or_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n without_o the_o assent_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v not_o the_o most_o sure_a &_o receive_a rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v for_o this_o be_v the_o pope_n judgement_n confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o the_o head_n confirm_v the_o verdict_n of_o the_o body_n and_o both_o together_o infallible_o define_v a_o truth_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n no_o catholic_a now_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o acknowledge_v or_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n for_o it_o be_v hold_v absolute_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o consequent_o our_o doctrine_n touch_v these_o point_n be_v not_o contrary_a true_a it_o be_v 4._o bell._n li._n 4._o the_o roman_a pontiff_n ca._n 2._o in_o fine_a stapleton_n in_o relect._n schola_v princi_fw-la controver_n 3_o quest_n 4._o that_o some_o catholic_a doctor_n as_o bellarmine_n and_o stapleton_n think_v not_o that_o opinion_n proper_o heretical_a which_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n as_o pope_n may_v be_v a_o heretic_n and_o teach_v heresy_n if_o he_o
doctor_n who_o plant_v rule_v and_o instruct_v the_o church_n present_o after_o christ_n ascension_n be_v to_o believe_v and_o obey_v but_o also_o that_o the_o like_a credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o their_o successor_n who_o in_o all_o age_n follow_v have_v supply_v and_o shall_v ever_o until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n supply_v their_o place_n and_o consequent_o that_o they_o also_o have_v be_v and_o be_v direct_v in_o all_o truth_n otherwise_o they_o may_v have_v waver_v and_o err_v themselves_o and_o so_o have_v draw_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o such_o inconvenience_n see_v therefore_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o age_n have_v supply_v such_o place_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o they_o have_v enjoy_v the_o like_a privilege_n and_o prerogative_n moreover_o the_o jew_n be_v bind_v to_o hear_v and_o obey_v the_o scribe_n &_o pharisee_n of_o the_o old_a law_n as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n 3_o math._n 23._o v._n 2._o &_o 3_o upon_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n have_v sit_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n all_o thing_n therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o observe_v you_o and_o do_v you_o who_o then_o will_v be_v so_o impudent_a as_o to_o say_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o hear_v and_o obey_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o luke_n 10._o see_v also_o math._n 10._o &_o joh._n 13._o iren._n li._n 4._o cap._n 4._o especial_o see_v that_o of_o they_o christ_n have_v say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o which_o word_n argue_v as_o great_a truth_n in_o their_o doctrine_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o hence_o s._n irenaeus_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o obey_v those_o who_o have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopriks_n have_v receive_v the_o gift_n or_o privilege_n of_o truth_n and_o although_o these_o sentence_n be_v principal_o verify_v in_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n yet_o they_o must_v needs_o also_o be_v confess_v true_a in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o they_o in_o all_o age_n disperse_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o when_o he_o teach_v and_o deliver_v we_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n final_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v most_o pregnant_a and_o faithful_a witness_n of_o that_o depositum_fw-la or_o sum_n of_o chistian_n doctrine_n which_o they_o receive_v from_o their_o predecessor_n and_o deliver_v to_o their_o successor_n they_o be_v also_o most_o indifferent_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n after_o their_o day_n arise_v in_o the_o church_n because_o they_o live_v before_o ever_o any_o such_o controversy_n be_v move_v and_o therefore_o be_v partial_a of_o no_o side_n 10._o aug._n count_n julianuni_fw-la li._n 2._o c._n 10._o hence_o be_v these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n to_o the_o pelagian_o concern_v this_o matter_n they_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n that_o live_v before_o he_o be_v angry_a neither_o with_o you_o nor_o with_o we_o they_o favour_v neither_o you_o nor_o we_o that_o which_o they_o find_v in_o the_o church_n they_o hold_v fast_o that_o which_o they_o learn_v they_o teach_v that_o which_o they_o receive_v of_o their_o father_n they_o deliver_v to_o their_o child_n hitherto_o s._n augustine_n this_o move_v the_o same_o holy_a father_n and_o diverse_a other_o to_o appeal_v so_o often_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o predecessor_n and_o to_o cite_v their_o testimony_n and_o these_o argument_n in_o like_a manner_n prove_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n always_o and_o in_o all_o age_n remain_v among_o the_o true_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o at_o all_o time_n even_o at_o this_o present_a a_o man_n may_v secure_o follow_v their_o belief_n and_o doctrine_n this_o i_o say_v the_o authority_n allege_v testify_v for_o the_o church_n must_v never_o err_v her_o prelate_n be_v always_o to_o stay_v we_o from_o waver_v in_o faith_n etc._n etc._n casulan_n 1._o cor._n 11._o verse_n 16._o august_n epist_n 118._o cap._n 5._o idem_n epist_n 86._o ad_fw-la casulan_n and_o it_o be_v moreover_o insinuate_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o these_o word_n but_o if_o a_o man_n seem_v contentious_a we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o as_o we_o see_v in_o they_o he_o plead_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o contentious_a and_o this_o move_v s._n augustine_n to_o term_v it_o most_o insolent_a madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o that_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n hold_v he_o tell_v we_o also_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n or_o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o ancestor_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o law_n in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o the_o divine_a scripture_n prescribe_v nothing_o certain_a s._n hierome_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n for_o in_o his_o dialogue_n against_o the_o luciferian_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o heretic_n affirm_v that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o law_n although_o it_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n not_o to_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n 75._o epiphani_fw-la haeres_fw-la 75._o and_o make_v the_o catholic_a assent_n to_o his_o assertion_n the_o like_a have_v s._n epiphanius_n who_o dispute_v against_o aerius_n in_o defence_n of_o certain_a fasting-day_n observe_v in_o the_o church_n use_v this_o argument_n the_o church_n receive_v they_o and_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o it_o consent_v before_o aerius_n be_v and_o they_o which_o of_o he_o be_v call_v aerian_n the_o same_o be_v affirm_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o last_o place_n for_o a_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n i_o must_v add_v such_o proposition_n as_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o these_o most_o certain_a ground_n by_o a_o evident_a and_o infallible_a argument_n for_o although_o it_o be_v common_o hold_v that_o in_o a_o sillogisme_n of_o one_o proposition_n of_o faith_n and_o another_o know_v only_o by_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n the_o conclusion_n be_v not_o proper_o of_o faith_n but_o theological_n that_o be_v a_o conclusion_n in_o divinity_n hold_v most_o true_a yet_o certain_a it_o be_v 2._o see_v greg._n de_fw-fr valentia_n in_o secunda_fw-la secundae_fw-la disput_fw-la 1._o qu._n 1._o puncto_fw-la 2._o that_o a_o conclusion_n follow_v in_o a_o silogisme_n of_o two_o proposition_n of_o faith_n be_v indirect_o and_o as_o the_o divine_v say_v immediate_o the_o fide_fw-la or_o of_o faith_n as_o also_o that_o proposition_n be_v which_o be_v infer_v by_o good_a and_o evident_a consequence_n of_o a_o proposition_n of_o faith_n because_o whosoever_o deni_v the_o proposition_n infer_v will_v be_v constrain_v to_o deny_v the_o proposition_n or_o proposition_n of_o which_o it_o be_v infer_v but_o concern_v such_o proposition_n the_o unlearned_a if_o occasion_n be_v offer_v must_v crave_v instruction_n of_o the_o learned_a chapter_n 12._o contain_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o first_o part_n these_o be_v the_o immovable_a and_o most_o firm_a ground_n which_o we_o find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n whereon_o we_o build_v our_o faith_n and_o religion_n upon_o these_o sure_a foundation_n as_o upon_o a_o firm_a rock_n every_o catholic_a build_v his_o belief_n and_o salvation_n and_o although_o the_o article_n deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o apparent_a to_o our_o sense_n nor_o for_o the_o most_o part_n comprehensible_a by_o reason_n yet_o in_o all_o such_o matter_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o make_v our_o reason_n and_o understanding_n captive_a unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n 5._o 2._o corint_fw-la 10._o vers_fw-la 5._o 1._o corint_fw-la 2._o vers_fw-la 5._o and_o acknowledge_v with_o the_o same_o apostle_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o that_o in_o such_o mystery_n above_o reason_n we_o can_v show_v ourselves_o more_o reasonable_a then_o to_o leave_v off_o reason_n 17._o genes_n 18._o vers_fw-la 14._o luk._n 1_o 37._o math._n 19_o 26._o mat._n 16_o 17._o very_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n that_o nothing_o be_v hard_a much_o less_o impossible_a unto_o god_n yea_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a with_o he_o although_o with_o man_n impossible_a and_o if_o scripture_n have_v not_o teach_v we_o this_o reason_n itself_o will_v easy_o persuade_v we_o to_o assent_v unto_o it_o because_o by_o nature_n he_o be_v omnipotent_a we_o know_v also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o have_v reveal_v such_o thing_n unto_o we_o but_o god_n himself_o who_o be_v eternal_a wisdom_n &_o truth_n can_v
difficulty_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v only_o to_o tame_v our_o understanding_n and_o increase_v our_o merit_n but_o like_a as_o these_o place_n be_v bring_v to_o accord_v so_o likewise_o be_v those_o and_o even_o with_o as_o great_a case_n which_o they_o allege_v to_o disprove_v the_o authority_n of_o those_o book_n which_o they_o reject_v and_o we_o receive_v neither_o can_v a_o atheist_n desirous_a to_o impugn_v both_o discern_v any_o difference_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v they_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a bible_n and_o offer_v a_o occasion_n to_o atheist_n of_o reject_v the_o whole_a unto_o this_o i_o may_v adjoine_v that_o beza_n reject_v or_o at_o the_o least_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o adulterous_a woman_n record_v in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o s._n johns_n gospel_n and_o why_o so_o joan._n beza_n in_o cap._n 8._o joan._n he_o yield_v these_o reason_n the_o great_a variety_n of_o read_v make_v i_o doubt_v of_o the_o whole_a matter_n to_o speak_v opinion_n i_o do_v not_o dissemble_v that_o to_o be_v by_o i_o worthy_o suspect_v which_o those_o ancient_a writer_n with_o so_o great_a a_o consent_n either_o reject_v or_o be_v ignorant_a off_o furthermore_o that_o the_o story_n report_v that_o jesus_n alone_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o temple_n with_o the_o woman_n i_o know_v not_o how_o probable_a it_o be_v and_o that_o it_o write_v that_o jesus_n write_v with_o his_o finger_n in_o the_o ground_n seem_v to_o i_o nowm_fw-la et_fw-la insolitum_fw-la a_o thing_n strange_a and_o not_o accustom_v neither_o can_v i_o conjecture_v how_o it_o can_v fit_o be_v explicate_v thus_o beza_n but_o if_o these_o reason_n be_v sound_a and_o sufficient_a the_o same_o may_v just_o be_v plead_v against_o diverse_a other_o parcel_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o consequent_o beza_n by_o this_o his_o manner_n of_o argue_v weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o second_o they_o laugh_v and_o scoff_n at_o the_o ceremony_n use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o which_o they_o induce_v their_o follower_n to_o think_v even_o as_o base_o of_o diverse_a ceremony_n prescribe_v by_o god_n in_o the_o old_a law_n etc._n levit._fw-la 16._o vers_fw-la 21._o etc._n etc._n as_o of_o that_o for_o example_n that_o the_o high_a priest_n shall_v put_v both_o his_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o a_o live_a goat_n and_o confess_v over_o he_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o childeren_n of_o israel_n and_o then_o shall_v send_v away_o the_o say_a goat_n into_o the_o desert_n bear_v upon_o he_o all_o their_o iniquity_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o water_n of_o aspersion_n with_o which_o the_o unclean_a be_v sprinkle_v which_o be_v make_v of_o run_a water_n 19_o numer_n 19_o the_o ash_n of_o a_o red_a cow_n burn_v scarlet_a cedar_n and_o bishop_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o ceremony_n far_o more_o reprehensible_a in_o a_o atheist_n judgement_n than_o those_o which_o in_o our_o church_n they_o call_v idolatrous_a and_o superstitious_a i_o add_v also_o that_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n they_o give_v a_o atheist_n licence_n to_o scoff_n at_o diverse_a action_n of_o the_o old_a prophet_n as_o of_o that_o of_o ahias_n selonite_n king_n 3._o reg._n 11._o verse_n 29._o 1._o of_o king_n who_o to_o signify_v to_o jeroboam_fw-la that_o he_o shall_v be_v king_n of_o ten_o tribe_n of_o the_o twelve_o cut_v a_o new_a cloak_n which_o he_o wear_v into_o twelve_o piece_n and_o deliver_v he_o ten_o of_o they_o yea_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n he_o may_v also_o laugh_v at_o diverse_a precept_n of_o god_n himself_o to_o the_o say_a prophet_n as_o for_o example_n at_o that_o of_o god_n to_o ezechiel_n 4._o ezech._n 4._o when_o he_o have_v he_o take_v a_o brick_n and_o draw_v in_o it_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n he_o command_v he_o likewise_o to_o sleep_v on_o his_o left_a side_n three_o hundred_o and_o ninety_o day_n and_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o eat_v daily_a a_o certain_a quantity_n of_o bread_n make_v of_o diverse_a sort_n of_o grain_n and_o bake_v in_o the_o dung_n of_o bull_n then_o to_o take_v a_o razor_n and_o shave_v off_o all_o the_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n and_o beard_n 5._o ezech._n 5._o and_o by_o weight_n to_o divide_v it_o into_o three_o part_n of_o which_o the_o first_o part_n he_o will_v he_o to_o burn_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o city_n the_o second_o he_o will_v he_o to_o chop_n with_o a_o knife_n and_o the_o last_o he_o will_v he_o to_o scatter_v in_o the_o wind_n and_o true_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o why_o a_o atheist_n shall_v think_v himself_o more_o worthy_a of_o reprehension_n for_o scoff_v at_o these_o action_n than_o our_o adversary_n for_o run_v the_o like_a course_n against_o our_o ceremony_n nay_o i_o add_v further_o that_o by_o their_o scoff_v at_o our_o ceremony_n they_o offer_v evil_a person_n a_o occasion_n to_o scoff_n at_o certain_a ceremony_n use_v even_o by_o our_o lord_n himself_o and_o record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n i_o will_v exemplify_v in_o one_o particular_a caluin_n call_v our_o ceremony_n of_o touch_v with_o spittle_n the_o nostril_n and_o ear_n of_o one_o that_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v before_o baptism_n 6._o caluin_n de_fw-fr eccle_n reformat_fw-la willet_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o apolog._n epist_n sect_n p._n 106._o mark_z 7_o 33._o john_n 9_o 6._o absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a and_o willet_n call_v it_o a_o interpretive_a toy_n but_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o this_o may_v be_v a_o motive_n to_o other_o to_o pronounce_v the_o same_o censure_n against_o certain_a like_a action_n of_o christ_n as_o that_o when_o heal_v a_o man_n deaf_a and_o dumb_a spit_v he_o touch_v his_o tongue_n or_o that_o when_o give_v sight_n to_o a_o blind_a man_n he_o spit_v on_o the_o ground_n &_o make_v clay_n of_o spittle_n and_o spread_v the_o clay_n upon_o his_o eye_n i_o can_v produce_v other_o such_o example_n three_o i_o have_v declare_v above_o that_o miracle_n proceed_v from_o god_n himself_o who_o can_v neither_o deceive_v nor_o be_v deceive_v be_v a_o principal_a motive_n to_o induce_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o supernatural_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o these_o also_o be_v weaken_v by_o our_o adversary_n for_o although_o they_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o 17_o that_o job._n 14.12_o mark_n 16_o 17_o christ_n bestow_v upon_o his_o apostle_n &_o their_o successor_n the_o gift_n of_o work_a miracle_n yet_o because_o such_o miracle_n in_o every_o age_n since_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n have_v be_v do_v by_o those_o of_o our_o church_n as_o testimony_n of_o their_o doctrine_n &_o sanctity_n of_o life_n they_o either_o 3._o either_o see_v abbot_n in_o his_o ans_fw-fr co_fw-la d._n hils_n sixth_o reason_n fulk_n upon_o the_o rheims_n testam_fw-la 2._o thes_n 2.9_o willet_n in_o his_o sinop_n controu_fw-fr 2._o qu._n 3._o deny_v that_o such_o miracle_n be_v ever_o wrought_v notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v record_v by_o all_o historian_n yea_o even_o by_o eye_n witness_n of_o the_o same_o of_o great_a credit_n or_o else_o they_o attribute_v the_o work_n of_o they_o to_o the_o devil_n or_o to_o natural_a cause_n the_o first_o two_o shift_n be_v use_v by_o the_o 1393._o the_o ceturiat_n in_o singulis_fw-la fere_n centurijs_fw-la cent._n 5._o c._n 10._o col_fw-fr 1393._o ceturiator_n who_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o s._n martin_n miracle_n write_v by_o s._n sulpitius_n severus_n a_o author_n of_o great_a credit_n &_o renown_n &_o a_o disciple_n of_o the_o same_o s._n martin_n while_o he_o live_v give_v this_o censure_n that_o either_o they_o be_v false_a or_o else_o that_o s._n martin_n be_v a_o conjurer_n the_o same_o devise_n be_v approve_v by_o 99_o by_o calu._n in_o prae_fw-la fat_a inst_z fox_n p._n 204._o col_fw-fr 2._o num._n 7._o hastings_z in_o his_o apolog_n against_o the_o waraw_n encount_n 2._o see_v also_o sutcl_n in_o his_o ans_fw-fr to_o kellison_n survey_v cap._n 11._o p._n 99_o caluin_n fox_n &_o other_o the_o three_o be_v add_v by_o sir_n francis_n hastings_n but_o every_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o the_o same_o shift_n may_v be_v use_v by_o a_o atheist_n for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o all_o miracle_n whatsoever_o although_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o &_o write_v by_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n for_o example_n in_o the_o life_n of_o s._n martin_n mention_v write_v by_o sulpitius_n severus_n we_o read_v that_o s._n martin_n raise_v 3._o dead_a man_n to_o life_n cast_v devil_n out_o of_o man_n possess_v that_o a_o woman_n be_v cure_v of_o a_o issue_n of_o blood_n by_o touch_v of_o his_o garment_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n say_v the_o new_a sectary_n be_v either_o fable_n
true_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o these_o new_a sectary_n do_v and_o see_v that_o their_o sanctity_n be_v so_o great_a malice_n can_v no_o way_n blind_v they_o very_o any_o indifferent_a man_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v put_v to_o his_o censure_n although_o those_o ancient_a father_n have_v enjoy_v no_o far_a warrant_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o these_o new_a gospeler_n do_v will_v rather_o imagine_v truth_n to_o be_v with_o they_o then_o with_o these_o but_o our_o adversary_n allege_v for_o themselves_o that_o every_o particular_a man_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v i_o answer_v that_o true_a it_o be_v that_o every_o particular_a man_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v except_v be_v subject_a to_o error_n but_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n join_v with_o the_o assent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o general_a council_n be_v infallible_a and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n can_v be_v erroneous_a and_o no_o general_a council_n be_v of_o supreme_a force_n without_o his_o confirmation_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o lawful_a general_a council_n can_v be_v false_a the_o reason_n wherefore_o the_o confirmation_n of_o all_o counsel_n depend_v so_o much_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v because_o he_o be_v ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o the_o body_n must_v needs_o have_v his_o assent_n and_o confirmation_n before_o the_o constitution_n by_o it_o make_v be_v of_o force_n and_o certain_o know_v to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n and_o falsehood_n final_o our_o protestant_n of_o england_n concern_v general_a counsel_n have_v decree_v as_o follow_v 228._o follow_v article_n of_o faith_n agree_v upon_o in_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o 1604._o art_n 21._o see_v fulk_n upon_o the_o rhen_n testament_n matthew_n 8_o 14._o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campion_n 4._o reason_n in_o english_a pa._n 110._o field_n book_n 4._o of_o the_o church_n chap_v 6._o pag._n 228._o general_n counsel_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o man_n whereof_o all_o be_v not_o govern_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o god_n may_v err_v and_o sometime_o have_v err_v even_o in_o thing_n pertain_v unto_o god_n wherefore_o thing_n ordain_v by_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v neither_o strength_n nor_o authority_n unless_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v that_o they_o be_v take_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o like_a censure_n be_v pronounce_v by_o their_o principal_a divine_n and_o m._n field_n tell_v we_o that_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v interpret_v the_o scripture_n and_o by_o their_o authority_n suppress_v all_o they_o that_o shall_v gainsay_v such_o interpretation_n and_o subject_a every_o man_n that_o shall_v disobey_v such_o determination_n they_o consent_v upon_o to_o excommunication_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n out_o of_o which_o his_o assertion_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o according_a to_o the_o providence_n and_o wisdom_n of_o almighty_a god_n general_a counsel_n shall_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o such_o matter_n for_o otherwise_o man_n may_v be_v force_v and_o that_o according_a to_o his_o ordinance_n to_o obey_v such_o general_a counsel_n err_v and_o propound_v false_a doctrine_n but_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o same_o field_n in_o another_o place_n conclude_v 342._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 204._o luther_n tome_n 2._o lib._n contra_fw-la regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la fol._n 342._o that_o counsel_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n thus_o write_v luther_n in_o his_o book_n against_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o of_o england_n in_o the_o last_o place_n henry_n bring_v in_o for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n here_o say_v i_o that_o by_o this_o my_o sentence_n be_v confirm_v for_o this_o be_v it_o which_o i_o say_v that_o the_o thomistical_a ass_n have_v nothing_o that_o they_o can_v bring_v forth_o but_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n and_o the_o ancient_a use_n but_o i_o as_o against_o the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n of_o man_n of_o angel_n of_o devil_n oppose_v not_o the_o ancient_a consent_n not_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n but_o the_o gospel_n the_o word_n of_o the_o one_o eternal_a majesty_n here_o i_o stand_v here_o i_o sit_v here_o i_o remain_v here_o i_o boast_v here_o i_o triumph_n here_o i_o insult_v over_o the_o say_n of_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o holy_a insomuch_o that_o i_o pass_v not_o if_o a_o thousand_o augustine_n a_o thousand_o tertullians_n do_v stand_v against_o i_o 5_o tome_n 5_o the_o like_a sentence_n he_o have_v in_o his_o famous_a commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o his_o word_n be_v these_o some_o will_v say_v unto_o i_o the_o church_n during_o so_o many_o age_n have_v so_o think_v and_o teach_v all_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o doctor_n most_o holy_a man_n much_o great_a and_o more_o learned_a than_o thou_o be_v who_o be_v thou_o that_o dare_v dissent_v from_o all_o these_o and_o obtrude_v unto_o we_o a_o diverse_a doctrine_n when_o satan_n thus_o urge_v and_o conspire_v with_o flesh_n and_o reason_n the_o conscience_n it_o terrify_v and_o despair_v unless_o constant_o thou_o return_v to_o thyself_o and_o say_v whether_o cyprian_n ambrose_n augustine_n or_o peter_n paul_n and_o john_n yea_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v otherwise_o yet_o this_o i_o know_v for_o certain_a that_o i_o counsel_n not_o man_n humane_a but_o divine_a thing_n again_o no_o other_o doctrine_n ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v or_o hear_v in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v other_o doctor_n or_o hearer_n together_o their_o doctrine_n be_v accurse_v hitherto_o luther_n confess_v as_o we_o see_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o contrary_a his_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o reject_v their_o authority_n and_o obstinate_o persist_v and_o obdurate_v himself_o in_o his_o heretical_a opinion_n 107._o zuinglius_fw-la to_o 1._o in_o explanat_fw-la artic_a 64._o fol._n 107._o the_o same_o course_n run_v zuinglius_fw-la who_o discourse_v thus_o the_o papist_n say_v who_o shall_v discuss_v the_o controversy_n and_o dissension_n which_o be_v at_o this_o present_a in_o the_o church_n who_o shall_v judge_v of_o they_o who_o shall_v pronounce_v sentence_n i_o answer_v the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o will_v we_o allow_v of_o any_o other_o judge_n they_o affirm_v we_o deny_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n who_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o controversy_n i_o say_v the_o one_o and_o only_a word_n of_o god_n but_o present_o thou_o begin_v to_o cry_v out_o the_o father_n the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n have_v so_o deliver_v and_o write_v thus_o but_o i_o relate_v to_o thou_o neither_o father_n nor_o mother_n but_o require_v the_o word_n by_o this_o only_a it_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n thus_o zuinglius_fw-la the_o opinion_n of_o caluin_n be_v consonant_a to_o these_o 38._o calu._n in_o praefat_fw-la instit_fw-la ad_fw-la regem_fw-la galiae_fw-la item_n book_n 3_o instit_fw-la chap_a 4._o §_o 38._o all_o thing_n say_v he_o discourse_v of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v we_o to_o serve_v we_o not_o to_o over-rule_v us._n again_o those_o thing_n which_o every_o foot_n occur_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o old_a writer_n or_o father_n touch_v satisfaction_n move_v i_o but_o little_a for_o i_o see_v that_o diverse_a of_o they_o i_o will_v say_v simple_o as_o it_o be_v almost_o all_o who_o work_n be_v extant_a either_o have_v err_v in_o this_o matter_n or_o have_v speak_v over_o crabed_o and_o hardly_o our_o english_a protestant_n have_v sufficient_o declare_v their_o opinion_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n by_o pronounce_v so_o hard_a a_o censure_n against_o general_a counsel_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v 92._o whitak_n contra_fw-la saunder_n pag._n 92._o hence_o whitaker_n one_o of_o their_o principal_a champion_n use_v this_o discourse_n if_o you_o argue_v say_v he_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o learned_a and_o ancient_a we_o yield_v no_o more_o to_o their_o word_n in_o cause_n of_o religion_n than_o we_o perceive_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n neither_o think_v yourself_o to_o have_v prove_v any_o thing_n though_o you_o bring_v against_o we_o the_o whole_a swarm_n of_o father_n except_o that_o which_o they_o say_v be_v justify_v not_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n but_o by_o god_n himself_o this_o be_v whitaker_n doctrine_n 159._o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campian_n 2._o reason_n p._n 70._o see_v he_o also_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 6._o reason_n pag._n 159
trust_v i_o have_v show_v sufficient_o by_o these_o ten_o chapter_n of_o s._n mathewe_n in_o which_o notwithstanding_o i_o have_v omit_v very_o many_o thing_n which_o just_o i_o may_v have_v reprehend_v what_o a_o long_a register_n of_o his_o error_n i_o can_v gather_v out_o of_o his_o whole_a work_n for_o this_o be_v true_a that_o oftentimes_o he_o err_v not_o only_o in_o word_n which_o be_v not_o so_o dangerous_a and_o may_v be_v tolerate_v but_o also_o in_o thing_n and_o the_o same_o most_o weighty_a and_o often_o time_n be_v enforce_v by_o wrest_v not_o the_o sentence_n only_o but_o also_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a writer_n to_o serve_v his_o error_n so_o john_n the_o 1._o vers_fw-la 12._o he_o corrupt_v a_o most_o notable_a place_n and_o of_o great_a moment_n touch_v free_a will_n etc._n etc._n thus_o castalio_n before_o this_o he_o affirm_v that_o to_o note_v all_o bezaes_n error_n in_o translate_n the_o new_a testament_n 170._o ibid._n pa._n 170._o will_v require_v a_o volume_n over_o great_a contrariwise_o beza_n to_o requite_v castalio_n condemn_v his_o translation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v very_o high_o praise_v by_o d._n humphrey_n and_o gesnerus_fw-la even_o now_o allege_v not_o only_o as_o false_a 10._o beza_n in_o testament_n anno_o 1556._o in_o praefat._n &_o in_o marc._n cap._n 3._o 1._o cor._n 1._o math._n 4._o luc._n 1._o act._n 8._o &_o 10._o corrupt_a and_o perverse_a but_o also_o as_o pestilent_a sacrilegious_a ethnical_a and_o turkish_a he_o avouch_v it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o translation_n as_o contain_v the_o very_a seed_n and_o lay_v open_v the_o high_a way_n to_o manifest_a apostasy_n from_o christ_n the_o like_a censure_n he_o pronounce_v against_o the_o new_a testament_n set_v forth_o by_o oecolampadius_n as_o be_v suppose_v and_o the_o other_o divine_n of_o basil_n for_o he_o avouch_v it_o to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n castalionis_fw-la place_n beza_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la defence_n &_o respon_n castalionis_fw-la wicked_a and_o altogether_o disagree_v from_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o of_o these_o foreign_a sectary_n enough_o section_n the_o third_z our_o english_a sectary_n also_o have_v false_o and_o corrupt_o translate_v the_o scripture_n but_o do_v our_o english_a sectary_n although_o they_o follow_v not_o as_o i_o have_v show_v some_o corruption_n of_o beza_n yet_o commit_v no_o wilful_a error_n and_o falsify_v nothing_o themselves_o true_o they_o be_v far_o from_o this_o sincerity_n etc._n carlisle_n in_o his_o book_n that_o christ_n go_v not_o down_o into_o hell_n print_v anno_fw-la 1582._o fol._n 116._o 144_o etc._n etc._n carlisle_n a_o english_a sectary_n have_v discover_v many_o fault_n in_o the_o english_a bible_n of_o they_o infer_v that_o our_o english_a protestant_n in_o many_o place_n detort_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o right_a sense_n and_o show_v themselves_o to_o love_v darkness_n more_o than_o light_n and_o falsehood_n more_o than_o truth_n he_o say_v they_o have_v corrupt_v and_o deprave_a the_o sense_n obscure_v the_o truth_n deceive_v the_o ignorant_a supplant_v the_o simple_a etc._n etc._n m._n broughton_n one_o of_o the_o great_a linguist_n of_o our_o english_a precisian_n write_v not_o many_o year_n since_o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o honourable_a lord_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v yet_o extant_a desire_v they_o to_o procure_v speedy_o a_o new_a translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o say_v he_o that_o which_o be_v now_o in_o use_n in_o england_n be_v full_a of_o error_n the_o same_o request_n be_v make_v of_o late_a by_o doctor_n reynolds_n in_o the_o conference_n hold_v at_o hampton-court_n between_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o puritan_n yea_o 981._o barlow_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o conference_n hold_v at_o hampton-court_n pag._n 45._o 46._o lindanus_n in_o dubitantio_n fox_n pa._n 981._o the_o king_n himself_o as_o it_o be_v record_v by_o m._n barlowe_n avouch_v that_o he_o can_v never_o yet_o see_v a_o bible_n well_o translate_v in_o english_a but_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v that_o of_o geneva_n wherefore_o by_o his_o majesty_n order_n another_o translation_n as_o be_v say_v be_v now_o in_o hand_n and_o this_o may_v very_o well_o be_v believe_v for_o bishop_n tonstal_n as_o it_o be_v record_v by_o lindanus_n note_v no_o less_o than_o two_o thousand_o corruption_n in_o tindals_n translation_n only_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o assertion_n of_o he_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o statute_n make_v by_o the_o first_o head_n of_o our_o english_a church_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o for_o notwithstanding_o that_o fox_n term_v tindal_n not_o only_o the_o true_a servant_n and_o martyr_n of_o god_n but_o the_o apostle_n also_o of_o england_n in_o our_o late_a age_n 732_o idem_fw-la pa._n 732_o and_o paint_v the_o say_a king_n with_o the_o gospel_n in_o his_o lap_n and_o his_o sword_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n lift_v up_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o king_n henry_n in_o the_o 34._o or_o 35._o year_n of_o his_o reign_n not_o long_o before_o his_o death_n together_o with_o the_o whole_a court_n of_o parliament_n 1._o an._n 34._o &_o 35_o henri_n 8._o c._n 1._o by_o statute_n condemn_v the_o translation_n of_o tindal_n as_o a_o crafty_a false_a and_o a_o untrue_a translation_n and_o also_o command_v it_o to_o be_v utter_o abolish_v and_o extinguish_v and_o forbid_v it_o to_o be_v keep_v or_o use_v within_o any_o of_o his_o dominion_n these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o statute_n itself_o yet_o extant_a final_o that_o the_o english_a bible_n itself_o set_v forth_o under_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o be_v corrupt_v it_o be_v confess_v by_o d._n humphrey_n and_o no_o doubt_n 523._o humfred_n de_fw-fr ratione_fw-la interpret_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 523._o but_o although_o many_o of_o the_o say_a corruption_n be_v amend_v in_o the_o latter_a edition_n yet_o the_o multitude_n of_o they_o through_o the_o whole_a bible_n be_v all_o most_o infinite_a for_o beside_o those_o which_o be_v reprehend_v by_o m._n broughton_n and_o d._n reynolds_n which_o as_o i_o suppose_v be_v none_o wilful_o commit_v in_o prejudice_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o in_o defence_n of_o their_o own_o against_o we_o because_o they_o be_v of_o our_o preciser_n sort_n of_o enemy_n will_v not_o as_o i_o imagine_v acknowledge_v any_o such_o error_n m._n gregory_n martin_n a_o learned_a man_n of_o our_o side_n have_v also_o make_v a_o whole_a book_n concern_v such_o corruption_n as_o have_v be_v make_v in_o their_o english_a bibles_n of_o set_a purpose_n to_o draw_v the_o text_n from_o the_o true_a sense_n to_o impugn_v we_o and_o favour_v their_o new_a opinion_n i_o can_v stand_v to_o repeat_v they_o all_o wherefore_o refer_v my_o reader_n to_o the_o say_a book_n of_o m._n gregory_n martin_n entitle_v a_o discovery_n of_o the_o false_a translation_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v only_o note_v a_o few_o yet_o in_o such_o order_n that_o every_o man_n may_v see_v that_o this_o have_v be_v do_v of_o malice_n concern_v every_o article_n between_o we_o in_o controversy_n neither_o do_v i_o speak_v of_o their_o forsake_v and_o corrupt_v of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a edition_n but_o of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a text_n itself_o which_o they_o profess_v to_o follow_v but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o this_o matter_n i_o must_v forewarn_v my_o reader_n that_o although_o our_o english_a sectary_n have_v set_v forth_o diverse_a bibles_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n yet_o i_o intend_v especial_o to_o speak_v of_o three_o of_o the_o principal_a of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v authorise_v by_o cranmer_n call_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o read_v during_o all_o king_n edward_n reign_n in_o their_o church_n and_o as_o it_o seem_v by_o the_o new_a print_n of_o it_o in_o the_o year_n 1562._o during_o a_o great_a part_n also_o of_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o second_o be_v print_v in_o the_o year_n 1577._o and_o again_o as_o i_o think_v in_o the_o year_n 1595._o and_o be_v authorise_v likewise_o to_o be_v read_v in_o their_o church_n at_o this_o present_a the_o three_o be_v that_o which_o be_v late_o print_v in_o the_o year_n 1600._o which_o as_o i_o imagine_v be_v the_o self_n same_o with_o that_o which_o be_v print_v not_o long_o before_o in_o the_o year_n 1589._o and_o 1592._o let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o see_v a_o few_o of_o their_o corruption_n section_n the_o four_o contain_v false_a translation_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n honour_n of_o image_n purgatory_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n first_o to_o improve_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n they_o banish_v the_o word_n church_n clean_o out_o of_o their_o bible_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o in_o place_n of_o
my_o judgement_n it_o be_v strange_a how_o they_o confess_v every_o man_n although_o never_o so_o much_o enlighten_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n and_o yet_o every_o one_o assure_v himself_o have_v one_o no_o more_o warrant_v then_o a_o other_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o truth_n final_o this_o doctrine_n of_o divine_a inspiration_n and_o illumination_n give_v occasion_n to_o 1._o to_o frederi_fw-la staphilus_n l._n de_fw-la concordia_fw-la discipulorum_fw-la lutheri_fw-la petrus_n palladius_n l._n de_fw-la haeresibus_fw-la caluin_n in_o instructorio_n contra_fw-la libert_n cap._n 9_o willet_n in_o his_o synop_n controver_n 1._o q._n 1._o muncerus_n and_o certain_a anabaptist_n his_o follower_n as_o also_o to_o the_o zwenckfeldians_n and_o libertine_n of_o their_o blaspheamous_a opinion_n for_o like_v as_o our_o protestant_a adversary_n common_o fly_v to_o illumination_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a text_n &_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n so_o these_o man_n either_o because_o they_o find_v it_o write_v that_o 6._o that_o 2._o cor._n 3_o 6._o the_o letter_n do_v kill_v or_o because_o they_o think_v the_o scripture_n not_o necessary_a see_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v able_a to_o teach_v man_n heart_n without_o any_o write_v letter_n reject_v the_o scripture_n altogether_o and_o pretend_v only_o such_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n hence_o also_o perhaps_o proceed_v the_o dream_n and_o vision_n of_o the_o enthusiast_n a_o famous_a sect_n of_o anabaptist_n but_o of_o this_o no_o more_o section_n the_o five_o concern_v their_o deduction_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o likewise_o be_v frame_v by_o they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o of_o their_o accusation_n of_o one_o another_o touch_v these_o matter_n it_o be_v moreover_o a_o thing_n most_o evident_a that_o in_o the_o deduction_n or_o collection_n of_o the_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v not_o only_o subject_a to_o error_n but_o also_o that_o they_o follow_v their_o own_o judgement_n and_o inclination_n and_o this_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n that_o shall_v consider_v the_o same_o one_o deduction_n i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o which_o i_o myself_o have_v hear_v some_o of_o they_o make_v which_o be_v this_o i_o urge_v they_o to_o bring_v forth_o some_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o their_o keep_n of_o the_o sunday_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o saturday_n and_o they_o allege_v as_o a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o this_o matter_n those_o word_n of_o s._n john_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n 10._o apocal._n 1_o 10._o i_o be_v in_o spirit_n on_o the_o dominical_a or_o as_o they_o say_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o what_o a_o insufficient_a deduction_n be_v this_o if_o we_o set_v aside_o the_o authority_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o despise_v how_o do_v this_o follow_v s._n john_n be_v in_o the_o spirit_n or_o have_v a_o revelation_n on_o the_o sunday_n therefore_o all_o christian_n may_v lawful_o work_v on_o the_o saturday_n a_o day_n command_v by_o god_n himself_o both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 17_o exo._n 20._o etc._n etc._n math._n 19_o 17_o if_o we_o follow_v the_o letter_n to_o be_v keep_v holy_a and_o observe_v the_o sunday_n i_o can_v bring_v a_o hundred_o more_o such_o example_n and_o my_o reader_n may_v gather_v some_o out_o of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o the_o seven_o chapter_n i_o add_v also_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o that_o their_o deduction_n out_o of_o the_o self_n same_o word_n be_v diverse_a and_o opposite_a for_o every_o sect_n like_a as_o it_o have_v a_o particular_a and_o proper_a form_n of_o faith_n so_o have_v it_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a deduction_n out_o of_o the_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n this_o can_v be_v deny_v because_o the_o collection_n of_o the_o lutheran_n zwinglian_o english_a protestant_n caluinist_n or_o puritan_n anabaptist_n libertine_n differ_v from_o one_o another_o as_o their_o belief_n be_v different_a and_o to_o give_v one_o instance_n or_o two_o but_o yet_o to_o omit_v the_o know_v different_a collection_n which_o be_v find_v among_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n do_v not_o some_o lutheran_n gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n a_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n altenbergense_n see_v colloquium_fw-la altenbergense_n other_o that_o such_o work_n be_v not_o necessary_a other_o necessary_a bishop_n barlow_n of_o rochester_n in_o his_o sermon_n whitgift_n &_o other_o do_v not_o also_o some_o sacramentary_n as_o our_o english_a protestant_n out_o of_o scripture_n deduce_v their_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n other_o as_o the_o puritan_n their_o government_n by_o elder_n do_v not_o final_o 20._o final_o caluin_n institut_fw-la book_n 2_o chap._n 16._o ver_fw-la 10.11.12_o in_o math._n 26._o &_o 27._o willet_n in_o his_o synopsis_n controver_n 20._o caluin_n willet_n and_o other_o gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o christ_n suffer_v in_o soul_n the_o pain_n of_o hell_n which_o by_o other_o be_v disalow_v and_o do_v not_o the_o follower_n of_o one_o part_n of_o these_o collection_n condemn_v they_o of_o the_o other_o either_o as_o heretic_n or_o as_o schismatic_n or_o as_o blaspheamer_n these_o thing_n be_v most_o certain_a of_o which_o i_o infer_v that_o all_o these_o sectary_n deduction_n can_v be_v find_v but_o some_o must_v needs_o frame_v they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o see_v that_o we_o have_v no_o infallible_a reason_n according_a to_o their_o ground_n to_o approve_v the_o one_o of_o they_o before_o another_o we_o may_v with_o like_a reason_n condemn_v they_o all_o as_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n as_o they_o be_v by_o they_o maintain_v then_o humane_a judgement_n and_o understanding_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o lutheran_n of_o wittenberg_n both_o concern_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o touch_v deduction_n out_o of_o the_o same_o it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v say_v by_o some_o man_n 32._o harmony_n of_o confess_v sect_n 10_o pa._n 332._o 333._o confess_v wittenb_n art_n 32._o that_o they_o hold_v the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o bear_v witness_n off_o and_o interpret_v holy_a scripture_n as_o likewise_o to_o judge_v of_o all_o doctrine_n according_a to_o that_o try_v the_o spirit_n whither_o they_o be_v of_o god_n and_o let_v the_o other_o judge_n yea_o they_o add_v that_o she_o have_v receive_v of_o her_o husband_n christ_n a_o certain_a rule_n to_o wit_n the_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a preach_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n from_o heaven_n according_a to_o the_o which_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o interpret_v those_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v obscure_a and_o to_o judge_v of_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v and_o confess_v that_o in_o very_a deed_n this_o be_v their_o doctrine_n which_o make_v not_o a_o little_a against_o the_o dream_n and_o inspiration_n of_o their_o brother_n but_o this_o can_v make_v no_o infallible_a ground_n according_a to_o their_o assertion_n for_o they_o make_v both_o the_o church_n and_o tradition_n subject_a to_o error_n and_o consequent_o if_o we_o believe_v they_o no_o man_n can_v build_v upon_o their_o authority_n a_o act_n of_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a faith_n final_o hence_o it_o proceed_v that_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o accuse_v and_o censure_v one_o a_o other_o to_o be_v corrupter_n of_o scripture_n falsifier_n and_o liar_n if_o we_o believe_v argentinens_fw-la believe_v luth._o epist_n ad_fw-la joan._n heruagium_fw-la typographum_fw-la argentinens_fw-la luther_n the_o sacramentary_n begin_v their_o opinion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o lie_n and_z with_o lie_v they_o do_v defend_v it_o and_o they_o broach_v it_o abroad_o by_o the_o wicked_a fraud_n of_o corrupt_v other_o man_n work_n if_o caluin_n 1085_o caluin_n admonit_fw-la 3._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la caluin_n in_o defence_n de_fw-fr sacram_fw-la p._n 1085_o the_o lutheran_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o forger_n and_o falsifier_n and_o of_o westphalus_n in_o particular_a he_o write_v thus_o westphalus_n as_o though_o he_o be_v i_o know_v not_o what_o comical_a jupiter_n carry_v minerva_n in_o his_o brain_n put_v bold_o upon_o all_o his_o fiction_n the_o vizard_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v now_o a_o old_a thing_n and_o common_o know_v that_o the_o false_a prophet_n do_v so_o much_o the_o more_o glorious_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o god_n by_o how_o much_o the_o further_o they_o be_v from_o he_o by_o these_o fright_n and_o scarecrow_n he_o will_v peradventure_o do_v something_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v confident_o sound_v again_o and_o again_o in_o his_o mouth_n but_o in_o word_n only_o and_o soon_o after_o this_o profane_a man_n do_v filthy_o abuse_v at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o sacred_a sentence_n no_o otherwise_o then_o magician_n do_v wrest_v holy_a
authority_n of_o he_o that_o teach_v it_o or_o some_o discourse_n of_o their_o own_o understanding_n last_o it_o be_v also_o apparent_a that_o in_o so_o do_v they_o make_v themselves_o judge_n over_o their_o master_n for_o understanding_n of_o diverse_a opinion_n among_o they_o they_o choose_v and_o embrace_v one_o as_o true_a and_o condemn_v all_o other_o as_o false_a but_o if_o their_o learned_a doctor_n themselves_o in_o their_o interpretation_n build_v upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n much_o more_o the_o unlearned_a wherefore_o i_o need_v not_o use_v any_o long_a discourse_n of_o this_o matter_n only_o i_o will_v add_v that_o it_o seem_v likewise_o necessary_a that_o he_o that_o will_v build_v his_o faith_n upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v find_v his_o whole_a belief_n in_o the_o say_a scripture_n and_o know_v perfect_o by_o his_o own_o study_n what_o article_n of_o faith_n by_o they_o be_v approve_v and_o consequent_o that_o he_o shall_v read_v over_o the_o whole_a bible_n and_o confer_v one_o place_n with_o another_o lest_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v otherwise_o if_o he_o believe_v other_o concern_v these_o point_n he_o seem_v to_o build_v upon_o their_o word_n more_o than_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o fall_v into_o that_o which_o by_o his_o brother_n and_o he_o be_v common_o reprehend_v as_o a_o fault_n in_o us._n for_o they_o reprehend_v the_o unlearned_a catholic_n that_o they_o rely_v so_o much_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o read_v not_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o to_o know_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v whereas_o if_o they_o do_v not_o as_o i_o have_v say_v they_o build_v themselves_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o few_o minister_n and_o these_o reason_n have_v more_o force_n concern_v the_o ignorant_a sectary_n that_o can_v read_v than_o the_o unlearned_a that_o can_v read_v especial_o this_o last_o for_o the_o ignorant_a sort_n can_v find_v their_o belief_n by_o their_o own_o study_n in_o the_o bible_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o rely_v whole_o upon_o other_o man_n report_n but_o our_o english_a unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a protestant_n yea_o some_o of_o the_o learned_a sort_n also_o recurre_v to_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o parliament_n and_o make_v it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n against_o these_o i_o reply_v that_o the_o parliament_n have_v no_o such_o prerogative_n 389._o see_v bilson_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n cha_n 16._o pag._n 371._o 388._o 389._o see_v it_o have_v neither_o authority_n from_o god_n after_o such_o sort_n to_o intermeddle_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o this_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o a_o warrant_n from_o he_o of_o not_o err_v yea_o see_v that_o it_o have_v err_v diverse_a time_n as_o our_o protestant_n themselves_o can_v deny_v the_o judgement_n of_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o insufficient_a that_o they_o must_v needs_o grant_v it_o to_o have_v err_v i_o prove_v because_o it_o have_v now_o approve_v some_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o in_o former_a time_n it_o condemn_v this_o be_v evident_a because_o some_o of_o the_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n now_o approve_v be_v censure_v to_o be_v heretical_a by_o a_o parliament_n hold_v in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o king_n richard_n the_o second_o against_o the_o wiccliffian_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1380._o also_o by_o another_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o four_o further_n their_o whole_a religion_n be_v condemn_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n yea_o they_o can_v deny_v but_o some_o of_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o their_o new_a belief_n be_v adjudge_v heresy_n by_o a_o parliament_n hold_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o even_o when_o he_o use_v the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o the_o statute_n of_o six_o article_n upon_o which_o diverse_a of_o their_o brother_n be_v burn_v as_o fox_n their_o martir-maker_n record_v wherefore_o i_o may_v well_o say_v that_o their_o religion_n have_v be_v condemn_v as_o authentical_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o it_o have_v be_v approve_v and_o what_o reason_n have_v they_o to_o believe_v more_o such_o parliament_n as_o have_v make_v for_o they_o than_o those_o that_o make_v against_o they_o moreover_o it_o be_v a_o most_o absurd_a thing_n to_o condemn_v the_o ancient_a counsel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o error_n and_o yet_o to_o make_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o english_a parliament_n consist_v principal_o of_o temporal_a man_n of_o a_o infallible_a truth_n 209._o field_n book_n 4_o chap._n 7._o pag._n 209._o final_o m._n field_n affirm_v that_o we_o can_v never_o be_v so_o well_o persuade_v of_o any_o man_n or_o multitude_n of_o man_n but_o that_o we_o may_v just_o fear_v either_o they_o be_v deceive_v or_o will_v deceive_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o if_o our_o faith_n depend_v upon_o such_o ground_n we_o can_v firm_o and_o undoubted_o believe_v which_o his_o assertion_n if_o we_o apply_v to_o the_o english_a parliament_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v confess_v that_o according_a to_o his_o judgement_n we_o may_v just_o fear_v that_o either_o it_o be_v deceive_v or_o will_v deceive_v and_o that_o who_o build_v his_o faith_n on_o that_o can_v firm_o and_o undoubted_o believe_v and_o consequent_o it_o follow_v he_o have_v no_o faith_n section_n the_o seven_o of_o the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o the_o unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a sectary_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a sectary_n build_v their_o faith_n and_o religion_n upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n i_o think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o gather_v out_o of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v how_o miserable_a their_o estate_n be_v and_o upon_o what_o weak_a ground_n they_o stand_v and_o venture_v the_o everlasting_a estate_n of_o their_o soul_n for_o the_o declaration_n of_o this_o let_v we_o suppose_v that_o a_o unlearned_a sectary_n be_v doubtful_a of_o his_o faith_n come_v to_o be_v resolve_v to_o his_o learned_a master_n and_o let_v we_o behold_v what_o ground_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o by_o which_o he_o may_v make_v a_o steadfast_a and_o assure_a resolution_n what_o then_o be_v this_o man_n perplex_v in_o his_o belief_n according_a to_o our_o adversary_n ordinary_a manner_n of_o proceed_v first_o wish_v to_o do_v very_o first_o according_a to_o their_o advice_n he_o must_v take_v the_o bible_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o diligent_o view_v what_o faith_n be_v there_o deliver_v and_o prescribe_v but_o what_o bible_n must_v he_o take_v into_o his_o hand_n no_o other_o certain_o if_o he_o follow_v their_o counsel_n but_o that_o which_o be_v translate_v and_o corrupt_v by_o those_o of_o their_o own_o sect_n not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o word_n of_o man_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o ground_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o they_o suppose_v this_o be_v do_v and_o that_o he_o be_v doubtful_a of_o this_o article_n among_o other_o whither_o christ_n be_v equal_a and_o consubstantial_a to_o his_o father_n or_o no_o turn_v over_o his_o bible_n and_o find_v those_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o 29._o john_n 14_o 29._o but_o yet_o find_v two_o nature_n in_o christ_n the_o one_o of_o god_n the_o other_o of_o man_n and_o not_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o which_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v be_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v what_o more_o be_v to_o be_v do_v he_o must_v confer_v say_v they_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n with_o other_o such_o like_a suppose_v then_o further_o that_o he_o turn_v to_o that_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n 30_o john_n 10_o 30_o i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o and_o ponder_v upon_o it_o find_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n may_v be_v one_o diverse_a way_n wherefore_o not_o understanding_n of_o what_o unity_n the_o say_a sentence_n be_v mean_v suppose_v that_o he_o remain_v yet_o doubtful_a and_o can_v resolve_v himself_o by_o his_o bible_n what_o must_v he_o do_v more_o he_o must_v then_o say_v the_o learned_a betake_v himself_o to_o his_o prayer_n and_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o his_o spirit_n may_v by_o his_o divine_a inspiration_n teach_v he_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o aforesaid_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o resolve_v he_o of_o the_o truth_n well_o he_o do_v so_o after_o his_o prayer_n either_o he_o find_v his_o mind_n incline_v to_o one_o certain_a interpretation_n and_o opinion_n or_o no_o if_o not_o then_o he_o be_v yet_o doubtful_a but_o if_o he_o do_v find_v his_o mind_n so_o incline_v be_v he_o consequent_o sure_a that_o he_o have_v attain_v to_o the_o truth_n how_o know_v
that_o pronounce_v now_o this_o now_o that_o of_o the_o same_o thing_n he_o be_v never_o constant_a to_o himself_o but_o think_v that_o such_o levity_n and_o inconstancy_n may_v be_v use_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o shameless_a jester_n common_o use_v play_v at_o dice._n again_o luther_n say_v he_o do_v not_o only_o bring_v his_o former_a doctrine_n in_o suspicion_n but_o also_o give_v the_o papist_n a_o most_o fit_a occasion_n to_o condemn_v he_o by_o send_v in_o this_o present_a controversy_n his_o reader_n only_o to_o those_o book_n which_o he_o write_v within_o four_o or_o five_o year_n before_o for_o who_o have_v hear_v or_o read_v these_o thing_n will_v not_o say_v that_o if_o so_o be_v that_o we_o expect_v other_o five_o year_n without_o all_o doubt_n they_o be_v past_a he_o will_v call_v into_o doubt_n those_o book_n which_o he_o write_v in_o these_o last_o five_o year_n thus_o far_a zwinglius_fw-la of_o luther_n inconstancy_n erasmus_n also_o 208._o whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o campian_n reason_n 8._o p._n 208._o a_o man_n deny_v by_o whitaker_n to_o be_v a_o writer_n of_o our_o side_n and_o by_o the_o martir-maker_n fox_n canonize_v for_o a_o saint_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n of_o luther_n &_o his_o disciple_n write_v after_o this_o sort_n arbitrio_fw-la sort_n erasmus_n lib_n 3._o de_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la what_o shall_v i_o recount_v here_o the_o dissension_n that_o be_v among_o these_o gospeler_n their_o bloody_a hatred_n their_o bitter_a contention_n nay_o their_o singular_a inconstancy_n luther_n himself_o have_v change_v his_o opinion_n so_o often_o and_o yet_o new_a paradox_n spring_v up_o from_o he_o daily_o hitherto_o erasmus_n final_o field_n although_o he_o extol_v luther_n for_o a_o worthy_a divine_a as_o ever_o the_o world_n have_v any_o in_o those_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v 170._o field_n book_n 3_o c._n 24._o p._n 170._o or_o in_o many_o age_n before_o yet_o confess_v that_o by_o degree_n he_o see_v and_o descry_v those_o popish_a error_n i_o use_v his_o word_n which_o at_o first_o he_o discern_v not_o but_o to_o excuse_v the_o matter_n he_o first_o avouch_v that_o in_o sundry_a point_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o of_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n of_o freewill_a grace_n justification_n the_o difference_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n faith_n and_o work_n christian_a liberty_n and_o the_o like_a he_o be_v ever_o constant_a which_o assertion_n of_o he_o how_o false_a it_o be_v that_o which_o i_o have_v before_o say_v touch_v freewill_a do_v demonstrate_v a_o other_o of_o his_o excuse_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o strange_a a_o thing_n as_o his_o adversary_n will_v make_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v that_o herein_o luther_n proceed_v by_o degree_n and_o in_o his_o late_a writing_n dislike_v that_o which_o in_o his_o former_a he_o do_v approve_v and_o his_o reason_n be_v because_o s._n augustine_n write_v a_o whole_a book_n of_o retractation_n s._n ambrose_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o teach_v before_o he_o have_v learn_v and_o so_o to_o deliver_v many_o thing_n that_o shall_v need_v a_o second_o reviewe_n and_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquine_n in_o his_o sum_n correct_v and_o alter_v many_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v write_v before_o against_o this_o i_o first_o reply_n that_o it_o excuse_v not_o luther_n building_n of_o his_o new_a belief_n upon_o his_o own_o judgement_n nay_o it_o prove_v manifest_o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o it_o by_o the_o infallible_a direction_n of_o any_o external_a guide_n but_o by_o the_o discourse_n and_o search_v of_o his_o own_o wit_n and_o moreover_o etc._n caluin_n instit_fw-la book_n 4._o ch_z 3._o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n part_n 4._o p._n 123_o 124._o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o be_v not_o extraordinary_o by_o internal_a inspiration_n instruct_v and_o send_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o diverse_a of_o these_o man_n seem_v plain_o to_o affirm_v for_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v perfect_a and_o they_o who_o he_o immediate_o send_v &_o direct_v in_o faith_n err_v not_o in_o any_o point_n of_o that_o argument_n but_o that_o his_o inconstant_a reason_n be_v the_o principal_a ground_n on_o which_o he_o build_v his_o say_a faith_n and_o religion_n second_o i_o add_v that_o the_o example_n bring_v by_o field_n in_o excuse_n of_o luther_n make_v nothing_o for_o his_o purpose_n for_o what_o if_o s._n augustine_n writing_n when_o he_o be_v yet_o a_o novice_n in_o christian_a religion_n and_o not_o full_o instruct_v err_v in_o some_o point_n which_o error_n have_v receive_v better_a instruction_n he_o reclaim_v what_o if_o the_o like_v happen_v to_o s._n ambrose_n be_v miraculous_o choose_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o a_o teacher_n before_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a what_o if_o s._n augustine_n before_o some_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v so_o thorough_o discuss_v and_o define_v in_o the_o church_n as_o afterward_o upon_o the_o rise_n of_o new_a heresy_n speak_v not_o so_o apt_o and_o proper_o as_o be_v needful_a in_o succeed_a time_n and_o therefore_o retract_v what_o he_o have_v utter_v what_o if_o he_o and_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquin_n in_o diverse_a matter_n disputable_a and_o not_o determine_v by_o the_o church_n alter_v and_o correct_v their_o former_a opinion_n so_o have_v cardinal_n baronius_n now_o do_v who_o have_v run_v over_o the_o first_o ten_o tome_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o book_n of_o retractation_n recall_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o judge_v amiss_o what_o i_o say_v if_o also_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o as_o without_o doubt_n they_o be_v not_o otherwise_o shall_v it_o therefore_o be_v lawful_a for_o luther_n or_o any_o other_o person_n to_o leap_v up_o and_o down_o hither_o and_o thither_o and_o to_o chap_v and_o change_v his_o faith_n according_a as_o his_o fancy_n lead_v he_o in_o any_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n very_o i_o think_v to_o no_o man_n of_o judgement_n such_o a_o fault_n will_v seem_v excusable_a but_o be_v zwinglius_fw-la who_o as_o we_o have_v see_v so_o peremptory_o reprehend_v luther_n for_o his_o inconstancy_n himself_o free_a from_o this_o crime_n true_o he_o be_v not_o and_o because_o brevity_n suffer_v i_o not_o to_o run_v through_o his_o work_n and_o to_o show_v the_o change_n and_o alteration_n of_o his_o opinion_n concern_v all_o particular_a point_n in_o which_o he_o show_v himself_o inconstant_a i_o will_v only_o convince_v he_o of_o inconstancy_n touch_v one_o or_o two_o and_o that_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o before_o his_o fall_n from_o we_o he_o hold_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n otherwise_o without_o all_o doubt_n his_o novelty_n will_v have_v be_v note_v and_o censure_v his_o first_o alteration_n therefore_o concern_v this_o matter_n be_v from_o we_o to_o anabaptisme_n his_o second_o from_o anabaptisme_n in_o some_o sort_n to_o our_o belief_n again_o that_o he_o be_v once_o a_o anabaptist_n thus_o he_o confess_v wherefore_o i_o myself_o also_o confess_v frank_o say_v he_o that_o a_o few_o year_n since_o i_o be_v deceive_v with_o this_o error_n think_v it_o better_a to_o defer_v the_o baptism_n of_o young_a child_n until_o they_o come_v to_o perfe_a age_n thus_o zwinglius_fw-la that_o he_o partly_o recant_v afterward_o this_o heresy_n he_o declare_v in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o say_v partly_o because_o he_o always_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n to_o salvation_n that_o he_o be_v likewise_o inconstant_a in_o his_o belief_n of_o the_o eucharist_n these_o his_o own_o word_n testify_v 202._o zwingl_n tom_fw-mi 2._o comment_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la &_o salsa_fw-la religione_fw-la cap_n de_fw-fr eucharist_n fol._n 202._o we_o have_v write_v two_o year_n since_o of_o the_o eucharist_n where_o we_o have_v write_v many_o thing_n rather_o according_a to_o the_o time_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o soon_o after_o if_o reader_n thou_o find_v certain_a thing_n here_o otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o former_a book_n do_v not_o thou_o wonder_v we_o will_v not_o give_v food_n out_o of_o season_n nor_o set_v pearl_n before_o swine_n final_o we_o retract_v therefore_o say_v he_o and_o revoke_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v say_v there_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o those_o which_o we_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o two_o and_o fortith_n year_n of_o our_o age_n counterpoise_v those_o which_o we_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o fortith_n when_o as_o we_o say_v we_o serve_v more_o the_o time_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o we_o may_v by_o that_o mean_v the_o more_o edify_v thus_o zwinglius_fw-la of_o himself_o who_o then_o can_v deny_v but_o he_o also_o be_v inconstant_a and_o at_o the_o least_o in_o outward_a show_n alter_v his_o belief_n yea_o do_v he_o not_o confess_v to_o
that_o peter_n lombardes_n doctrine_n be_v true_o golden_a there_o be_v dirty_a and_o filthy_a thus_o discourse_v stancarus_n one_o of_o their_o own_o company_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o peter_n lombard_n by_o the_o catholic_n be_v account_v but_o among_o the_o middle_a sort_n of_o divine_n and_o who_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o compare_v he_o to_o s._n hierome_n especial_o in_o translate_n and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n but_o the_o more_o to_o weaken_v the_o credit_n of_o their_o translate_a bibles_n which_o they_o boast_v to_o be_v draw_v and_o featched_a from_o the_o very_a fountain_n themselves_o to_o wit_n from_o the_o hebrew_n &_o greek_a text_n in_o which_o tongue_n the_o scripture_n be_v first_o pen_v let_v we_o here_o add_v not_o only_o that_o they_o be_v not_o sincere_o featched_a from_o thence_o as_o have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v before_o even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n themselves_o but_o also_o that_o the_o say_v fountain_n and_o that_o likewise_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n be_v not_o now_o pure_a and_o sincere_a but_o in_o some_o place_n have_v be_v corrupt_v i_o have_v in_o like_a sort_n prove_v before_o this_o last_o point_n as_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o although_o something_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a yet_o in_o this_o place_n i_o will_v relate_v for_o further_a proof_n of_o the_o same_o certain_a sentence_n of_o castalio_n conradus_n pellicanus_fw-la and_o d._n humphrey_n in_o which_o this_o be_v plain_o avouch_v for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o write_n in_o defence_n of_o himself_o against_o one_o that_o maintain_v the_o sincerity_n and_o purity_n of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n have_v these_o word_n 227._o castalio_n in_o defence_n suae_fw-la translat_fw-la pag._n 227._o this_o good_a fellow_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n as_o in_o manner_n all_o the_o jew_n be_v and_o some_o christian_n draw_v near_o to_o judaisme_n or_o judaize_v in_o this_o respect_n that_o he_o think_v no_o error_n ever_o to_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o hebrew_n bibles_n that_o god_n will_v never_o suffer_v that_o any_o word_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v in_o those_o sacred_a book_n as_o though_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v more_o holy_a than_o those_o of_o the_o new_a in_o the_o which_o new_a so_o many_o diverse_a reading_n be_v find_v in_o so_o many_o place_n or_o as_o though_o it_o be_v credible_a that_o god_n have_v more_o regard_n of_o one_o or_o other_o little_a word_n or_o syllable_n than_o he_o have_v of_o whole_a book_n whereof_o he_o have_v suffer_v many_o i_o say_v not_o to_o be_v deprave_a but_o to_o be_v utter_o lose_v thus_o castalio_n and_o in_o his_o discourse_n follow_v he_o call_v this_o high_a opinion_n of_o the_o hebrew_n text_n a_o jewish_a superstition_n 8._o conrade_n pellic_fw-la tom_fw-mi 4._o in_o psal_n 85._o v._n 9_o alias_fw-la 8._o conradus_n pellicanus_fw-la expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o 84._o psalm_n vers_fw-la 9_o qui_fw-la convertuntur_fw-la ad_fw-la cor_fw-la which_o in_o one_o of_o our_o english_a bibles_n be_v thus_o translate_v church_n translate_v bibl._n 1592._o bible_n read_v in_o church_n that_o they_o turn_v not_o again_o to_o folly_n and_o a_o other_o that_o they_o turn_v not_o again_o write_v after_o this_o sort_n the_o old_a interpreter_n seem_v to_o have_v read_v one_o way_n whereas_o the_o jew_n now_o read_v another_o which_o i_o say_v because_o i_o will_v not_o have_v man_n think_v this_o to_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o ignorance_n or_o slothfulness_n of_o the_o old_a interpreter_n rather_o we_o have_v cause_n to_o find_v fault_n for_o want_n of_o diligence_n in_o the_o antiquary_n and_o faith_n in_o the_o jew_n who_o both_o before_o christ_n come_v &_o since_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v less_o careful_a of_o the_o psalm_n then_o of_o their_o talmudical_a song_n hitherto_o be_v his_o word_n 219._o humfred_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr rat_n interpret_v pa._n 178._o idem_fw-la ibid._n lib._n 2._o pag._n 219._o in_o like_a sort_n d._n humphrey_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v easy_o find_v out_o and_o judge_n how_o many_o place_n the_o jewish_a superstition_n have_v corrupt_v and_o again_o i_o like_v not_o say_v he_o that_o man_n shall_v to_o much_o follow_v the_o rabbin_n as_o many_o do_v for_o those_o place_n which_o promise_n and_o declare_v christ_n the_o true_a messiah_n be_v most_o filthy_o corrupt_v by_o they_o such_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o these_o sectary_n perhaps_o some_o man_n will_v deem_v these_o to_o be_v man_n of_o no_o account_n among_o protestant_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o d._n humphrey_n be_v well_o know_v 189._o humfre_n ibid._n lib._n 1._o pag._n 62._o 63._o 189._o and_o he_o match_v castalio_n with_o the_o best_a and_o affirm_v the_o bible_n by_o he_o translate_v to_o be_v most_o painful_a most_o diligent_a most_o thorough_o confer_v examine_v sift_v and_o polish_a gesnerus_fw-la also_o a_o sectary_n of_o no_o small_a fame_n give_v he_o this_o commendation_n castalio_n have_v translate_v the_o bible_n so_o diligent_o bibliotheca_fw-la gesnerus_fw-la in_o bibliotheca_fw-la and_o with_o so_o singular_a fidelity_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_n that_o he_o seem_v far_o to_o have_v surpass_v all_o translation_n of_o all_o man_n whatsoever_o have_v hitherto_o be_v set_v forth_o final_o conradus_n pellicanus_fw-la be_v professor_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n in_o zuricke_n and_o out_o of_o this_o whole_a discourse_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o although_o we_o shall_v suppose_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o both_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n build_v only_o upon_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o that_o the_o say_a letter_n be_v a_o far_o more_o sound_a and_o firm_a ground_n as_o it_o be_v translate_v and_o expound_v by_o we_o than_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v translate_v and_o expound_v by_o our_o adversary_n for_o although_o we_o both_o challenge_n to_o ourselves_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o our_o translation_n and_o interpretation_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o they_o we_o also_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o sense_n by_o we_o receive_v offer_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o censure_n of_o all_o our_o ancestor_n from_o who_o together_o with_o the_o letter_n we_o have_v receive_v also_o that_o sense_n which_o we_o embrace_v contrariwise_o they_o both_o in_o their_o translation_n and_o exposition_n build_v only_o upon_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o have_v no_o further_o proof_n or_o authority_n and_o this_o i_o say_v be_v true_a although_o we_o shall_v make_v the_o church_n subject_n to_o error_n and_o grant_v the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o adversary_n belief_n but_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o divine_a and_o beside_o this_o the_o new_a sectary_n build_v not_o upon_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n second_o i_o infer_v of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v that_o our_o adversary_n according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n have_v no_o infallible_a mean_n whereby_o to_o know_v what_o article_n of_o faith_n have_v be_v reveal_v by_o god_n to_o his_o church_n and_o consequent_o that_o they_o want_v a_o condition_n necessary_a to_o true_a faith_n and_o this_o be_v manifest_a both_o because_o they_o make_v the_o church_n which_o god_n as_o i_o have_v show_v have_v ordain_v to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_a for_o we_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o such_o thing_n subject_a to_o error_n and_o also_o because_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o ordinary_o pretend_v in_o this_o case_n be_v insufficient_a neither_o do_v they_o build_v upon_o it_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v three_o i_o conclude_v that_o absolute_o all_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a gospel_n ground_n their_o faith_n and_o religion_n upon_o the_o judgement_n and_o fancy_n of_o man_n not_o upon_o any_o divine_a authority_n hence_o they_o measure_v the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n by_o their_o own_o weak_a understanding_n and_o in_o those_o mystery_n which_o be_v above_o the_o reach_n of_o reason_n can_v be_v by_o it_o comprehend_v they_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o jew_n how_o can_v this_o be_v 13._o john_n 6._o v._o 52._o ciril_n lib._n 4._o in_o joan._n cap._n 13._o which_o word_n how_o say_v s._n ciril_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v a_o jewish_a word_n and_o worthy_a of_o all_o punishment_n this_o also_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n confess_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o the_o first_o head_n of_o our_o english_a church_n for_o be_v desirous_a after_o his_o denial_n of_o the_o pope_n supreamacy_n to_o make_v some_o innovation_n of_o religion_n within_o his_o dominion_n he_o publish_v as_o hal_n hollinshed_n and_o stowe_n
religion_n to_o wit_n apostolic_a tradition_n page_n 86._o sect._n 1_o of_o apostolic_a tradition_n in_o general_n page_n 86._o sect._n 2._o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n in_o particular_a page_n 91._o chap._n 9_o of_o general_a counsel_n which_o make_v the_o three_o particular_a ground_n of_o catholic_a religion_n page_n 97._o chap._n 10._o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o make_v a_o four_o particular_a ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o other_o ground_n hence_o proceed_v page_n 108._o sect._n 1_o contain_v a_o brief_a explication_n or_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o pope_n supreamacy_n page_n 108._o sect._n 2._o the_o aforesaid_a doctrine_n be_v prove_v page_n 113._o sect._n 3_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o church_n as_o supreme_a pastor_n be_v of_o divine_a and_o infallible_a authority_n and_o of_o some_o other_o ground_n of_o faith_n flow_v out_o of_o these_o page_n 127._o sect._n 4._o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o sectary_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antechi_v be_v brief_o confute_v and_o two_o objection_n against_o the_o premise_n be_v answer_v p._n 133._o chap._n 11._o of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o all_o age_n page_n 140._o chap._n 12._o contain_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o first_o part_n page_n 144._o the_o second_o part_n in_o which_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o new_a sectary_n build_v their_o faith_n upon_o no_o divine_a authority_n but_o that_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o their_o belief_n and_o religion_n be_v their_o own_o judgement_n and_o consequent_o that_o they_o have_v neither_o true_a faith_n nor_o religion_n chapter_n 1._o that_o by_o their_o doctrine_n they_o deny_v or_o at_o the_o least_o weaken_v the_o three_o principal_a and_o general_a ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n set_v down_o in_o the_o three_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n page_n 1._o section_n 1._o the_o number_n of_o atheist_n among_o they_o be_v great_a and_o of_o the_o cause_n by_o they_o give_v of_o this_o impiety_n page_n 1._o sect._n 2._o of_o our_o adversary_n doctrine_n concern_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n heaven_n and_o hell_n page_n 8._o sect._n 3_o of_o our_o adversary_n impious_a assertion_n concern_v christ_n and_o christian_a religion_n page_n 12._o sect._n 4._o that_o in_o like_a sort_n they_o weaken_v the_o principal_a proof_n of_o the_o say_v three_o ground_n page_n 19_o chap._n 2._o the_o new_a sectary_n debase_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o in_o place_n of_o it_o extol_v a_o presumptuous_a faith_n by_o themselves_o invent_v page_n 26._o chap._n 3._o that_o our_o adversary_n deny_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o affirm_v it_o to_o have_v err_v and_o perish_v page_n 30._o chap._n 4._o they_o reject_v all_o particular_a ground_n of_o faith_n above_o assign_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n page_n 32._o chap._n 5._o they_o build_v not_o upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o first_o that_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n only_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n page_n 47._o sect._n 1_o in_o which_o this_o be_v prove_v because_o by_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n itself_o can_v be_v prove_v canonical_a it_o be_v also_o argue_v that_o according_a to_o the_o sectary_n ground_n there_o be_v no_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o some_o principal_a reason_n especial_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o allege_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o such_o scripture_n be_v refell_v page_n 47._o sect._n 2._o in_o which_o the_o same_o argument_n be_v prosecute_v and_o two_o thing_n principal_o be_v prove_v first_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n receive_v small_a authority_n if_o we_o believe_v our_o adversary_n by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n because_o they_o accuse_v they_o of_o error_n second_o because_o they_o confess_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v corrupt_v p._n 67._o sect._n 3_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v because_o every_o christian_a be_v bind_v to_o admit_v and_o believe_v certain_a proposition_n neither_o express_o contain_v nor_o according_a to_o some_o man_n judgement_n so_o evident_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n page_n 75._o sect._n 4._o the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v prove_v by_o other_o argument_n especial_o by_o this_o that_o the_o true_a interpretation_n can_v be_v infallible_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o letter_n page_n 78._o chap._n 6._o the_o new_a sectary_n bibles_n contain_v not_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n page_n 83._o sect._n 1_o in_o which_o this_o be_v first_o prove_v concern_v all_o their_o bibles_n in_o general_n page_n 83._o sect._n 2._o that_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la caluin_n and_o beza_n in_o particular_a have_v corrupt_o translate_v the_o scripture_n page_n 84._o sect._n 3_o our_o english_a sectary_n also_o have_v false_o and_o corrupt_o translate_v the_o scripture_n page_n 90._o sect._n 4._o contain_v false_a translation_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n honour_n of_o image_n purgatory_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n page_n 92._o sect._n 5._o of_o their_o corruption_n against_o inherent_a justice_n justification_n by_o good_a work_n merit_n of_o good_a work_n and_o keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o in_o defence_n of_o their_o special_a ●aith_n vain_a security_n etc._n etc._n and_o against_o freewill_n and_o merit_n page_n 94._o sect._n 6._o of_o their_o false_a translation_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n priesthood_n election_n of_o bishop_n single_a life_n of_o priest_n penance_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n the_o sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n and_o some_o other_o point_n p._n 96._o sect._n 7._o that_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n in_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n follow_v the_o step_n of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n and_o what_o follow_v of_o this_o discourse_n page_n 101._o chap._n 7._o that_o they_o build_v not_o upon_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n contain_v as_o they_o say_v in_o their_o own_o bibles_n page_n 103._o sect._n 1_o in_o which_o this_o be_v prove_v first_o because_o the_o proposition_n which_o they_o term_v of_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o express_a term_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n page_n 103._o sect._n 2._o the_o same_o argument_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o protestant_n concern_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o some_o word_n of_o scripture_n allege_v for_o our_o catholic_a doctrine_n touch_v justification_n in_o the_o section_n before_o page_n 106._o sect._n 3_o the_o like_a discourse_n be_v make_v concern_v a_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n page_n 114._o sect._n 4._o the_o follower_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n in_o diverse_a matter_n observe_v not_o the_o letter_n of_o their_o own_o bibles_n page_n 130._o chap._n 8._o in_o receive_v translate_n and_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o only_o build_v upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o judgement_n and_o that_o they_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n page_n 134._o sect._n 1_o in_o which_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o their_o doctrine_n and_o dissension_n concern_v the_o book_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o their_o alter_n of_o the_o text_n of_o the_o same_o page_n 134._o sect._n 2._o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o their_o translation_n and_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n page_n 141._o sect._n 3_o concern_v the_o new_a exposition_n of_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o particular_a page_n 146._o sect._n 4._o that_o certain_a rule_n prescribe_v by_o field_n for_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o scripture_n of_o themselves_o alone_o without_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n be_v insufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o that_o our_o exposition_n make_v be_v of_o divine_a truth_n page_n 149._o sect._n 5._o concern_v their_o deduction_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o they_o likewise_o be_v frame_v by_o they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o of_o their_o accusation_n of_o one_o another_o touch_v these_o matter_n page_n 157._o sect._n 6._o the_o unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a sectary_n in_o receive_v and_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n likewise_o build_v upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o judgement_n and_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n p._n 161._o sect._n 7._o of_o the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o the_o unlearned_a and_o ignorant_a sectary_n page_n 166._o sect._n 8._o that_o the_o new_a sectary_n allege_v scripture_n to_o confirm_v their_o new_a doctrine_n it_o be_v no_o certain_a argument_n that_o they_o build_v their_o faith_n and_o religion_n upon_o the_o say_a scripture_n page_n 172._o chap._n 9_o in_o which_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o new_a sectary_n